■ :.>*> ■ £H ■ n ^^^ y \ l*>">2> LIBRARY OF CONGRESS. I ! UNITED STATES OF AMERICA.! <5»» > 3^> WL JDJM out *» 3 jar 3 ■> >^ 3 3 3> 3>3J 3 > Z ^ 3 t > > 3po3ss> 3 3 3»32» 3 > 38>332» 33S>^>35) > a>2» .3d : -t>>3» Z>"X>XSJ >>> X3> 3 3JX> ^ 3Dl iXX>3* 3>I 3 rsO QO>IX 3> 3> 1111 15? i?l ^X^ .'^3BK> ?3»>" ^SK» "" "" / / MARTYHOLOG1". THE WESTERN MARTYROLOGY; OR, BLOODY ASSIZES. CONTAINING THE Lities, Crtals, ann .Dging ^>peedbe0 OF ALL THOSE EMINENT PROTESTANTS THAT SUFFERED IN THE WEST OF ENGLAND, AND ELSE- WHERE, FROM THE YEAR 1678 TO THIS TIME ; TOGETHER WITH THE LIFE AND DEATH OF GEORGE L. JEFFREYS. TO WHICH IS NOW ADDED, TO MAKE IT COMPLEAT, AN ACCOUNT OF THE BARBAROUS WHIPPINGS OF SEVERAL PERSONS IN THE WEST. Also the TRIAL and CASE of Mr. JOHN TUTCHIN (the author of the Observatory), with the Cruel Sentence passed upon him ; and his Petition to K. James to be Hanged : never before printed. REPRINTED FROM THE FIFTH EDITION, With an Alphabetical Table to the whole. ffiottfccm : JAMES BLACKWOOD & CO., 8, LOVEL PATERNOSTER ROW. MDCCCLXXIII. ^ UNWIN BROTHERS, PRINTERS, LONDON AND CHILWORT*?- 7"o the Memory of those Worthy Protestants who suffered in the West, and elsewhere, from the Year 1678, to this present Time. Since that free Agent who conducts the W©rld, His Wheels of Providence has backward whirl' d, And by the Turn Men to their Senses brings, To loath ttieir Idol- Priests and Idol- Kings, { Finding a Popish Promise proves all one, From an Ignatian Chair, and from a Throne. 1 ) Since o'er-indulgent Heaven has been so kind, To op'n our Eyes by Miracles, we find All Men admiring they've so long been blind ; Surpris'd, they should so long their Friends oppose, And with their credulous Trust caress their Foes. Amidst both to confound all the Evidence given in before the Parliament ;and Publick Courts of Justice for Sir Edmonds being murthered with Papists ; and over and above — That he was a Self-murth'erer —No better than a Second running him through with his own .'Sword after his Death. 'Tis some plausible Insinuations he has rfchere heapt together which will make it necessary to be a little targer on him than those who came after ; especially since he led /the Way both to the Sufferings of the Protestants, and Malice of their Enemies. Sir Edmond-Bury Godfry, was born of a good Family ; his delations are sufficiently known, and as justly respected in tthe City of London: But 'tis not the intention of this Piece to write the Lives, but the Deaths of those who are the Subjects of it ; at least no more of one, than is requisite for describing the other. — The occasion of his Knighthood is reported to be the good Service he did in giving Directions for quenching a Fire which happened some Years past at St. James's; which Honour the then Duke of York obtain'd for him, having been under a great Consternation at the apprehension of the Danger. This very probably might be the beginning of his so great Intimacy •with the Papists, which Sir Roger so often hints in his History, and which afterwards cost him so dearly. He was a Person of known Vertues — For the Instances of his Secret Charity the World is obliged to that Reverend and .Learned Person who preach' d his Funeral Sermon. For his Piety and Integrity, even his worst Enemy here gives us several Instances thereof; that particularly, when after those Prophetic bodings of his approaching Martyrdom, he took care to settle all things, and adjust Accompts exactly, and even in Parish Matters to right such as he thought had formerly been injur'd. Lastly, how vigilant and' careful he was in the Execution of that Office ir (£&muiui*25urp dPo&frep* 3 and fed them daily with his own Hands : Nor did he neglect Justice while he was exercising Mercy, but to the Amazement, and almost Terrour of the Beholders, Pursued a Malefactor, who had taken Sanctuary in a Pesthouse, thinking none wou'd be so desperate to follow him, and with his own Hands fetch' d him thence, when the other Officers dar'd not venture after him. 'Twas either his Acquaintance among the Papists, before intimated, and hence his being consequently better known by those who were of that Party, or his industry and indefatigable care in the Discharge of his Office, or both, to which we may rationally attribute the addressing of the first Discovery of the Popish Plot to him, rather than any other. The clearest Method for the Description of his Martyrdom, will be first to enquire into the Occasion of it. And then the Manner, Circumstances, and Authors ; and lastly the several Endeavours that have been used to clear the Papists of that in- delible Guilt which sticks upon 'em from so horrid a Villany. For the occasion of his Martyrdom, what was said in the Summing up the Evidence concerning him, but modestly and on Supposition only, we may yet venture to affirm positively — This Protestant Magistrate was certainly 7nurder ) d— because he was a Protestant. But the particular and special Reasons were these following: 1. He had taken Examinations about the Popish Plot, and those not only (as the Attorney- General said in the Trial of the Assassines) perhaps, but undoubtedly more than are now extant. Mr. Oates addressed himself to him with his Depositions — he had taken them, and enquired something closely into the Design, as his Manner was in any Thing which belonged to his Office. This the Papists very well knew, and therefore found it con- venient to be rid of a troublesom busie Man, who now he was engaged in the Business, was likely to pierce to the Bottom on't — and he being once out of the Way, the Evidence might very easily have been dispos'd of to their Satisfaction. But here those, whose Interest 'tis to get clear of such a Charge, object very pertly — What Need, or what Advantage, in taking off a Justice, when the same Things were deposed in other Places f 2. The Second Reason or Occasion for this Murder will easily answer that Objection. They not only bore him Malice for B 2 4 Wbt WLt&ttvn ^art^rolog:^ what he had already done in O cites* s Case, and might probably be ignorant of those secret passages transacted before King and Council, in Relation to Oates' s Depositions — but were sensible of a deeper Reason than all this, and which brought them into more Danger than the other. See it in the Lord Stafford's Trial, p. 22. and 24. Mr. Dugdale had received a Letter the very Night on which this Gentleman was martyrM (of which more anon) with these Words in't — [ This Night Sir~E. B. G. is dispatched.'] — This came from the Papists to Ewers, a Popish Priest at my Lord Aston' s, who, after he had read it, communicated the good News to Mr. Dugdale, telling him One of their Enemies was taken out of the Way. — He being desirous to know how Things went, ask'd what was the Reason they took away his Life ? Ewers tells him — Ihere was a Message sent to Mr. Coleman, when in Newgate to desire hi?n that he wotted not reveal any Thing of the Plot; which Message came from the Duke of York. — To which Coleman replied — What was he the nearer— for he had been so foolish as to reveal all to Sir E. B. G. already? But upon the Examination of Oates before Sir E. B. G. he was afraid he would come in as Evidence against him, having shewn himself eager in the Business. — To which the Duke of York sent Word again, — If he wou'd take Care not to reveal, but conceal it, Sir E. B. G. should not come in against him. — And the next News was — that he was dispatched. Now this effectually takes off the former Cavil ; and this Sir Roger cou'd not but be sensible of; and concluding so un- answerably against what he built so much upon, e'en lets it fairly drop, and mentions not a Syllable of it in all his Book. — Which Evidence of Mr. Dugdale's, is beyond Contradiction con- flrm'd by several Hints unluckily given in Sir Roger's own Depositions—^. 187. where Mr. Wynnel deposes Sir E. told him — Coleman wou'd die — and mention'd Consults about a Toleration — Adding further — That he was Master of a dangerous Secret that wou'd be fatal to him. — Hence nothing can be plainer to any reasonable Man, than that Sir Edmond was acquainted with Mr. Coleman as well as Dr. Oates, and knew even the minute Circumstances in those Letters which afterwards were brought against him, and stood in Fear of his Life for that very Reason, as for the same he afterwards lost it. One of the assassins threw a twisted handkerchief round his neck, and drew him behind the rails." — P 5. For the Manner of his Death, those who were Accomplices .herein shou'd best know it ; and the Objections against their Evidence the Reader may find cleared if hell take the Pains to look a little lower. — After the poor Gentleman had several Days been dog'd by the Papists, as Dr. Oates f Mr. Prance, and Mr. Bedlow, unanimously swear, and which he as good as ac- knowledged to Mr. Robinson , as appears on the Trial of his Murtherers, they at last accomplished their wicked Design on Saturday, Octob. 12. 1678. and under a Pretence of a Quarrel, which they knew his Care for the publick Peace wou'd oblige lim to prevent, about Nine at Night, as he was going Home, ^ot him into the Water-Gate at Somerset-House. When he vas thus trapan'd in, and got out of Hearing from the Street, ;oward the lower End of the Yard, Green, One of the Assassines, .hrew a twisted Handkerchief round his Neck, and drew him oehind the Rails, — which, notwithstanding his Age and Weak- less, are objected against its Probability ; taking him thus at a Surprize, and in the Dark, 'twas easie for him to do, especially Three or Four more of 'em immediately falling in to assist him, there they throtled him ; and lest that shou'd not be enough, punch'd and kickt him on the Breast, as sufficiently appear'd when his body was found, by the Marks upon it ; and lest he shou'd not be yet dead enough, another of 'em, Girald, or, as I and him called in other Places, Fitz-Girald, wou'd have run him through, but was hindered by the Rest, lest the Blood shou'd have discover' d 'em : But Green, to make sure Work, wrung his Neck round, as 'twas found afterwards on the Inspection of the Jurgeons. For the Disposal of the Body, they all carried it up into a little Chamber of Hills, another of the Murtherers, who had been, or was Dr. Godwins Man, where it lay till Monday Night, when they remov'd it into another Room, and thence back again till ■Wednesday, when they carried him out in a Sedan about Twelve a Clock, and afterwards upon a Horse, with Hill behind him, to support him, till they got to Primrose Hill, or, as some say 'tis called, Green-Bury-Hill, near a Publick House, called the White House, and there threw him into a Ditch, with his Gloves and Cane on the Bank near him, and his own Sword run through him, -on Purpose to persuade the World he had kill'd himself. Very 6 %ty SQiegtern S^artproiofi?* politkkly making Choice of a Place to lay him where they might both think he wou'd be sometime conceal'd, and near where he had been seen walking the same Day, if the Affidavits to this Purpose in Sr. Rs Book may be reposed upon. All this Mr. Prance swears upon the Trial of his Murtherers, with whom he acknowledges he had several Consults before at the Plow- Alehouse, and other Places, concerning it : Whdse Evidence is confirm'd, not only by innumerable other Circum- stances, but Mr. Bedlow s Confession, who was to have been present at the Action, had not Remorse of Conscience hinderd him, having been engaged by the Conspirators for a great Reward, and was afterwards to have a considerable Part of it for carrying off the Body, which he swears he saw in the very Room whither Prance says 'twas removed on the Monday Night. — But even here too he faird 'em — So 'twas done without his Assistance in the Manner before described. And very sure, no doubt, the great Plotters thought they had now made their Business : For we are not to fancy these little Villains attempted such an Action of their own Impulse ; the great Spring we had before in Dugdales Story of Coleman, from whence those large Sums must proceed which Bedlow mentions. Now, I say, they thought the Business was as sure as the Jews had made the Sepulchre — having seaPd all the Mouths of the Parties concerned, with Oaths and Sacraments, Solemnities com- monly abus'd by their Party to the foulest Villanies — But neither that, nor the Darkness of the Night, nor the Distance of Places, cou'd hinder the Divine Justice from looking through and dis- covering the Villains concern'd, and bringing 'em to Punishments worthy their Wickedness. — The Manner thus, — His body being found by some who accidentally walk'd that Way, and generally suspected from his former discourses, and many Pro- babilities, that he was murder'd by the Papists, the King issued out a Proclamation with a Promise of Indempnity and 500/. Reward to any who wou'd discover it. On this Mr. Bedlow writ a Letter to the Secretary from the Country, concerning his Knowledge of something considerable in that Matter; and being, sent for up to Town, reveaPd whate'er he knew of the Business. And a little after, Prance being accidentally seiz'd by a Constable and then in the House of Lords Lobby, was known by Mr. &fr (EtimtmluBurp (KoDfre^ Bedlow, having seen his Face on that Monday Night, when at the same Time they saw the Body ; and who on Examination discovered also what his Share was in the Murther : And tho' he afterwards denied it, for Fear of losing his Trade, and such other Motives, as he himself confest, yet in a Quarter of an Hour he returned again to his first Evidence. But the most difficult Task will be what yet remains — the* clearing those Objections, and some of 'em plausible Ones, andl which have led away too many well-meaning Men, against the Truth of this recited Evidence ; as well as some insinuations = spred abroad, and made the most of to persuade the World this worthy Gentleman was guilty of his own Death. But here it can't be expected that a private Person, who has- not the Advantages of Sir Roger, to have Warrants from Two- K's and all Persons and Papers before him relating to that Business, and who had Wit great, and Honesty little enough to- pick out, and leave in, what was for his Turn ; that such an one should be able to go through so many Hundred Pages as his Book consist of, and answer every Particular therein. 'Twill be Satisfaction enough to any rational Man to touch some of the Plots and Fetches made Use of from one Time to another to • wash the Blackamoor white, and clear the Papists from this • Villany : To answer the main Objections against the Evidence,., and bring some corroborating Circumstances for the Truth on't. And lastly, To shew Sir Edmond could not murther himself ii* that Place and Manner as is pretended. The first of the Methods they used to sham off this Murther^ was by early Reports they spred about, even before his Body was found, That he had kilVd himself. Now this Sir Roger himself can scarce have Brow enough to affirm 'twas done by the Brothers to save the Estate, since 'twas a very odd Way, certainly.,, to do that, by letting the World openly know that he was a Self- murtherer. That such Reports were spred, we shall by and by prove, and that from Sir Roger's own Book, without the Trouble^ of consulting the Paper-Office, — and who got by't, who shou'dL do't, whose Interest was't to do't, but the Papists, altho' the par- ticular Authors may be unknown ? Among the many Evidences of his Death, being known at so many distant Places before 'twas publick here, there are Two 8 %%t Wlt&mn St^artprologp* come up exactly to the Matter in Hand. The First— which was recited by the Reverend Dean of Bangor, now Bishop of St. Asaph, in his Funeral Sermon, and which, it seems, he had of One Mr. Angus — who the same day Sir Edmorid was found about Five a Clock on Primrose Hill, being in Mr. Chiswells Shop in St. PauVs Church-yard about One or Two, there was a person unknown to him past by, and clapping him upon the Shoulder, ask'd him \If 'he heard the News that Sir E. B. G. was found dead, with his own Sword run through htm,'] The second is of Mr. Goldsborough, Clerk of the House of Com- mons, who being in a Barber's Shop on Tuesday Morning while he was missing, a person came in open-mouth'd [That SirY. B. G. was found;] and being ask'd where, reply'd, [He had killd himself upon Primrose-Hill ;] where upon Thursday following in the Evening the Body was indeed discovered. The Second considerable Attempt made the same Way, was by one Magrath an Irishman, the Famous Celiers, who foretold both the Prince of Wales, and a great many more after him ; the Jesuits in Newgate, and others, who pretended to prove Sir E. B. G. hang'd himself, and his Clerk Moor cut him down — But being examin'd at the Council- Board, it prov'd only a malicious and false Contrivance. 'Twill be very well worth the while to remark that Mrs. Mary Gibbo7is was one of the Persons deeply engaged in this Design among so much other good Company; and that Mrs. Mary Gibbonsis one of the main Evidences Sir Roger makes use of in his Book — Tho' this Sham was then so thin laid, and this Person so well known, that even Farewell and Pain were asham'd to make Use of either in their letters to Pra?ice on this Subject, but protest very Solemnly, That none of those, neither Celiers, the Newgate Priests, nor Mrs. Mary Gibbons, or other Papists, or Popishly affected, knew any thing of the Matter, but were all Strangers to it. When this Contrivance was found out by all the World to be as very a Sham as Celiers' 's being with child in Newgate, or some Body else in another Place, yet was not the infatigable Zeal of that Party discouraged ; but Mr. Farewell, a person intrusted in managing the Estates and Lands of the Jesuits ; and Pain, Brother to the Famous Pain who wrote St. Coleman's Elegy, set feir (BomtmlulSurp (Bo&ftep* 9. a new Project on Foot to the same Purpose in some Letters sent to Prance, and Printed by N. Tho7nson; which indeed, if we look closely into 'em, will appear to be Sir Roger in little, there being the self-same Expressions in one as the t'other, and his Mystery seeming to be hardly more than their Letters spread a little thinner. — The Blood gubling out of the Wound — Bedlow's and Prance's East and West Contradictions, — The Wax dropt on his Cloaths after he was found, and several other Things the self-same in both of 'em. And I remember, at that very Time 'twas shrewdly suspected and rumoured about Town, that the same Person lay behind the Curtain, and thrust their Cats-Feet into the Fire, who has since appeared publickly in Prosecution of the same Cause. Before their Trial they reckoned their Witnesses by the Hun- dred, pretending to make his Self-murther as clear as the Sun. When they came to it, and had all the fair Play imaginable, Pain's Heart ^ failed him, and he pleaded Guilty. — Farewell made so poor a Defence, and the Matter was so clearly proved against 'em, that Farewell and Thomson were both fined by the Court, and sentenced to stand in the Pillory, with this Inscription over them, [For Libelling the yustice of the Nation, by making the World believe that Sir E. B. G. murthered himselj 1] Where how abundantly they were honoured by the Spectators, all who know anything of the Story can't but remember. Thus it lay for some Time, and no Person was so hardy to make any farther Attempts that Way while there was any Possibility of having Justice against 'em : But when the Sheriffs, Juries, nay, King and all were changed; when that past which poor Oates and all the World have Cause to remember ; when, if Prance would not unconfess, he knew he must tread the same dolorous Way that Oates had gone before him and had now done all that could be desired ; then Sir Roger took up the Cudgels, and published his Book, called, [The Mystery of Sir E. B. G's Death itnfoldedj^ Or, which would have been a fitter Title, [The Second Edition with Additions ^Farewell's and Pain's Letters] The Main of what he advances there, will be answer'd in clear- ing, as was proposed, the Objections against the Evidence relating to that Matter. If the ill Character of the Persons who gave it be urged to in- io %fjt aaie^terrt S^artprolog;^ validate their Testimony, as this does not reach all of 'em, so it has been often answered — Who but such were fit for such Vil- lanies? If their seeming Disagreement in some Part of their Evidence, what greater Argument that 'twas no Combination ? If Prance retracted — we are told by Sir Roger himself, That he was a white-liver* d Man, and so might be frighted out of Trutji as well as into it. And indeed on that very Reason 'twas long before suspected, that if he should ever be bore hard upon, he would not be able to stand it. [But the Papists would never kill him, because he had obliged 'em] — As if Gratitude was a Popish Virtue, or Charity, any more than Faith were to be kept with Hereticks : Those that think so let 'em look back, and see if the last Reign be enough to convince 'em. It may be urged on, Here are several Testimonies in the Trial of the Murtherers, and since, that invalidate the Evidence there given, — Warner and his Wife and Maid about Green — That he was at Home all that Evening when he was accused for com?nit- ing it, — 'Twould be enough to oppose to this, their Confession to Captain Richardson — That they could do him no good. — But besides this, Mr. Justice Dolbirts Observation on the Trial clears it effectually — They swore to the Saturday Fortnight after Michaelmass-Z?tfy, which was, says the Justice, the igth of Octob. not the 12th, on which the Murther was committed. If Broadstreet and others testifie they were in the Room where the Body was laid, and HilVs Wife so rubs up her Memory, that after so many Years she remembers what she could not upon his Trial — That she, and he, and their Child lay in the Room all that very Time when the Body was said to be there — 'Twould not be a Shift, but an Answer — That they were Papists that swore it, who can swear any Thing. But besides, Broadstreet acknow- ledged before the Duke of Monmouth, That Hill was gone from his Lodgings before this Time, as was proved on the Trial- Mrs. Tilden says, There was but One Key to their Door. Mrs. Broadstreet at the same Time, with what she own'd about Hill, That there were Six or Seven — Contradictions in others, we see, as well as the King's Evidence ; and these being much homer, and more irreconcileable than theirs, must of Necessity destroy the Belief of what else they testifie. But the Home-thrust is — [The Centinels saw no Sedan carried out — ] This the printed Trial easily sets right. The Centinels were Trollop and Wright. Trollop staid till Ten, and saw a Sedan go in, but none out again : Wright till One, but saw none go out. It must be in Trollop's Time, being as Prance says, about Twelve. — The Centinels being then at Burfs Lodge smoaking and drinking. Trollop says on the Trial, he was never at the Lodge, but so does not Wright, as any one may see by consulting it, he being never asked the Question. ; Twill give a great Light into this Deed of Darkness in the next Place, to consider several circumstantial Evidences, which would, of themselves, go very far to prove that Sir E. B. G. was murthered by the Papists, and that in the very Place and Man- ner which has been already described. The First of these from Sir Edmond's own Mouth, which has been already hinted, but shall here be farther cleared. 'Twas indeed so notorious, that Sir E. B. G. had boding Thoughts, and a Sort of a Prophetical Intimation of his Death* and that by the Papists ; and discoursed of so publickly and generally, that Sir Roger could not deny all the Matter of Fact, but endeavours to avoid the Force on't ; when he says, as is wit- nessed by several — [On my Conscience I shall be the First Martyr] This he interprets — [/ doubt I shant live long.] — Sure, though he says in one Place, The Man was no Fool, yet he must be supposed to be no better, any more than all the Readers, if neither he nor they made any Difference between being hanged and martyred. But the very Reason of this Interpretation was for what Sir R. dearly loved — That he might have Opportunity for a Reflection on the Parliament — He feared, says he, that the Parliament would call him to Account, and that nothing would salisfie 'em but his Life, for not discovering it sooner. — In Oppo- sition to this, any impartial Man need but consider what follows. Esquire Robinson, on the Trial of the Murderers, witnesses that he had a Discourse with Sir Edmond a little while before his Death about the Plot then newly talkt on — Says Robinson — / wish the Depth of the Matter be found out.— Sir E. answers, / am afraid it is not — Upon my Conscience I believe I shall be the First Martyr. — He acknowledged he had taken several Examin- ations about it, but thought he shou'd have little Thanks for his 12 43 By Stealth they kill, and with a secret Stroak, Silence that Voice which Charm'd whene'er it Spoke, The bleeding Orifice o'erflow'd the Ground, More like some mighty Deluge, than a Wound. Through the large Space his Blood and Vitals glide, And his whole Body might have past beside. The wreaking Crimson swell'd into a Flood, And stream'd a Second Time in CapeVs Blood. He's in his Son again to Death pursu'd, An Instance of the high's t Ingratitude. They then malicious Stratagem's imploy, With Life his dearer Honour to destroy ; And make his Fame extinguish with his Breath, And act beyond the Cruelties of Death. Here Murther is in all its Shapes compleat, As Lines united in their Center meet, Form'd by the blackest Politicks of Hell ; Was Cain so dev'lish when his Brother fell ? He that contrives, or his own Fate desires, Wants Courage, and for Fear of Death, expires : But Mighty ESSEX was in all Things Brave ; Neither to Hope, nor to Despair, a Slave. He had a Soul too Innocent and Great, To fear, or to anticipate his Fate : Yet their exalted Impudence and Guilt Charge on himself the precious Blood they spilt. So were the Protestants some Years ago Destroy'd in Ireland without a Foe. By their own barbarous Hands the Mad-men die ; And massacre themselves they know not why : Whilst the kind Irish howl to see the Gore, And pious Catholicks their Fate deplore. If you refuse to trust Erroneous Fame, Royal Mac-Ninny will confirm the same. We have lost more in Injured CapeVs Heir, Than the poor Bankrupt Age can e'er repair. Nature indulg'd him so, that there we saw All the choice Stroaks her steddy Hand could draw : 44 %ty (Hilt0um fl^artjroloffi?* He the Old English Glory did revive, In him we had Plant agenets alive. Grandeur, and Fortune, and a vast renown Fit to support the Lustre of a Crown. All these in him were potently conjoin'd, But all was too ignoble for his Mind. Wisdom and Vertue, Properties Divine, Those, God-like ESSEX, were entirely thine. In his great Name he's still preserv'd alive, And will to all succeding Times survive. With just Progression, as the constant Sun Doth move, and through its bright E clip tick Run. For whilst his Dust does undistinguish'd lye, -\ And his blest Soul is soar'd above the Sky, > Fame shall below his parted Breath supply. ) WILLIAM LORD RUSSEL. HE next who fell under their Cruelty, and to whose Death Essex's was but a Prologue, was my Lord Russel; without all Dispute the finest Gentleman, one of 'em, that ever England bred ; and whose pious Life and Vertue is as much Treason against the Court, by affronting 'em with what was so much hated there, as any Thing else that was sworn against him. His Family was ancient, tho' not rais'd to the Honours it at present enjoys, till King Edward's Time, when John Russel, a Dorsetshire Gentleman, who had done many Services, and received many favours from the Crown, both in Henry the Seventh, and Henry the Eighth's Time, being by the latter made Lord High Admiral, and at his Death Lord High Steward of England, for the Solemnity of the Coronation; obtained such a Victory for his Young Master against his Rebels, as was rewarded with the Title of The Earl of Bedford. The Occasion of it thus — Idolatry and Superstition being now root- ing out by the Publick Authority, and Images every where pulling down, the Loyal Papists mutined, and one of their Miilliam 3Lor& 1&ug0eL 45 Priests stabb'd a Commander of the King's, who was obeying his Orders, and Ten Thousand of the deluded Rabble rise in the Defence of that barbarous Action, and their old Mass and Holy- Water. Against whom this Fortunate Lord was sent with an Army, who routed 'em all, relieved Exeter, which they had besieged, and took their Gods, Banners, Crucifixes, and all the rest of their Trumpery, wherein the deluded Creatures trusted for Victory. Thus the Family of the Russels were early Enemies to the Romish Superstition, tho' this Brave Gentleman only paid the Scores of all his Ancestors. The Son and Heir of this John was Francis, second Earl of Bedford, who was as faithful to the Crown as his Father, an Enemy and Terror to the French, and a Friend to the Protestant Religion, as may appear by the Learned Books of Wickliff, which he collected, and at his Death bequeathed to a great Man, who he knew would make good Use of 'em. His Eldest Son, Willia7n Lord Russel, the late Duke of Bedford, is sufficiently known to every true Englishman, and his Person and Memory will be honoured by them as long as the World lasts. But 'tis accessary good Men should not be im- mortal — if they were, we should almost lose their Examples, it looking so like Flattery. But to do 'em Justice while they are living, with more Safety and less Censure, we may discourse of that Noble Gentleman, his Son and Name-sake William Lord Russel, who made so great a Figure in our Courts and Parlia- ments, before he was sacrificed to the Cruelty and Revenge of his Popish Enemies. If we'd find his first Offence, which lay behind the Scene, and was indeed the Cause of his Death, though other Colours were necessary to amuse the Publick, we must look some Years backward, as he himself does in his last Speech, wherein he tells the World, [He cannot but think his Earnestness in the Matter of the Exclusion, had no small Influence on his present Sufferings.] Being chosen Knight of the Shire for Bedfordshire, where the Evenness and Sweetness of his Behaviour, and his Virtuous Life, made him so well- beloved, that he'll never be forgotten. He began sooner than most others to see into that Danger we were in from Popery, and all those fatal Consequences which have since happened ; and described them as plainly as if he had more than the ordi- nary Inspection of a Prudent Man into Futurities. Thus in his 46 %%t Wlt&tzvn 9£artptolo0;^ first Speech, on the Discovery of the Popish Plot in yS. he has these Words, [/ am of Opinion that the Life of our King, the Safety of our Country, and the Protestant Religion, are in great danger from Popery; and that either this Parliament must suppress the Power and Growth of Popery, or elso that Popery will soon destroy not only Parliaments, but all that is near and dear to us.] And lower, [/ humbly move, that we may reso'lve to take into our Consideration in the first Place, how to suppress Popery, and prevent a $op is& &ucce0£or, without which all our Endeavours about this Matter will not signifie any thing.] And how much he was in the Right as to all these Guesses, which then no doubt were nick-named Groundless and Factious Fears and Jealousies, all the World is now satisfied. Nothing can be more handsome than what he says on this Subject in his Last Speech, which gives the Reasons of his Acting at that Time, and being so earnest for the Bill, in which indeed is as fair a State of that great Question as we shall any where find in so little a Compass. [/ cannot, (says he) but give some Touch about the Bill of Exclusion, and shew the Reasons of my appear- ing in that Business, which in short is this : That I thought the Nation was in such Danger of Popery, and that the Expectation of a Popish Successor (as I have said in Parlia?nent) put the Sting's %ift also in such Danger, that I saw no Way so effectual to secure both, as such a Bill. As to the Limitations which were proposed, if they were sincerely offered, and had past into a Law, the Dicke then would have been excluded fro7n the Power of a King, and the Government quite altered, and little more than the Name of a King left: So L could not see either Sin or Fault in the one, when all People were willing to admit of the other; but thought it better to have a King with his Prerogative, and the Nation easie and safe under hij?i, than a King without it, which must have bred perpetual Jealousies, and continual Struggled] Thus far that Noble Lord, with whom concurred at that time very many great and good Men, as true Lovers of the Regulated Monarchy of England, as of the Protestant Religion ; and in- deed all were at that Time unanimous in the House of Commons, and other Places, except some honest Men, who despaired of obtaining his Exclusion ; Others who strained their Charity almost as far as Origen, who hoped well even of the Devil, and aaitlltam Horti BuggfeL 47 they came not far short, believing a Papist would be honest or grateful. Some who were indifferent — Their private Obliga- tions to the Duke byassing their Judgments too much on his Side. Others fearful that the contrary Tide ran so strong, they could have no Safety but under his Protection — and perhaps more than all these, others, who fairly bought and sold their Religion and Liberties — the Blood and Souls of themselves and honester Men ; whom 'tis not doubted but our Chronicles will mark as long as our Nation has any in't that can but write them- selves, or read what others have written. The Reader will pardon this little Digression, and go on with me to remark some strange Expressions in another Speech of his. ? Twas on a Debate in the House for Money to be given for the Relief of Tangier. [Doth not (says he) the Duke's interest indanger the $ ing '£ % ife ? And are not our Lives and Fortunes in Danger to be snatched up by his Power? — And shall we yet make him stronger by putting Money into his Hands f] And a little lower [ When his Majesty shall be pleased to free us from the Danger of a Popish Successor, and remove from his Council, and Places of Trust, all those who are for his Interest, because there can be no distinction made between the Duke's Interest and the Popish — Then I shall conclude, what Money we shall give, will be disposed of according to his Majesty's own Royal Plea- sure, and for the true Protestant Interest, and I shall be ready to give, even all that I have in the World, if his Majesty shall have Occasion for it.} I have been the larger in this, to unde- ceive the World as to that clamouring against those Parliaments for not giving the King Money, the true Reason of which we may here plainly perceive. But there is one Passage so very remarkable, and I know not how to call it less than Prophetical, in the Beginning of this same Speech, that it must by no means be omitted, 'tis as fol- lows. [If ever there should happen in this Nation any such Change, that I should not have Liberty to live a Protestant, / a7n resolved to die one.] And I think he was as good as his Word — For being markt out, and among others, appointed for the Slaughter, he was taken up and imprisoned for that End and Purpose in the Tower, and brought to his Trial above all Days in the Year, on Essex's Day, the i^th of July, 1683. He 48 W$t aflJegtern 9£artpcolog;^ was brought to the Old Baily, and the same Morning tried for High Treason. He earnestly desired he might have Respite, and might not be tried that Day, since he had some Witnesses that could not be in Town till the Night ; nay, they were in such Post-haste, and so hot a Scent for his Blood, that on his earnest Desire, they would not stay so much as till the Afternoon, pre- tending 'twas against President, and they could not do it witnout the Attorney- General's Consent ; tho' 'tis notorious, that both Plunket, the titular Irish Primate, and Fitz-Harris, before spoken of, were both of them tried a whole Term after they were arraign'd ; tho' in both Cases the Attorney oppos'd it ; and even here in the Case of Treason, at the Old Baily too, Whitebread's Trial was put off to another Sessions. If 'tis pleaded, the Case is different, and that there was Reason for the one, but not for the other : 'Twill be readily granted, — Tho' my Lord's Evidence were not ready, theirs was — They had concerted Business better, and just at that Time News was brought hot into the House, that my Lord of Essex had this Morning prevented Justice, as has been before remarked in the Story of Essex j as also, That several of the Jury had said, They had never found Russel guilty, had it not been for that Accident. And indeed, were that all in the Case, there would be still Room for a great deal of Charity : For though that was no proper Evidence against the Prisoner, yet very few Persons in the World, per- haps, could have been found whose Minds would have been so firm, and Reason so clear, as not to be, whether they would or no, hinged and by ass' d by such a sudden Report as this brought in among 'em, when they had no Time to consider calmly of the Matter ; and this, no doubt, was very well known by those who ordered Things in the manner before noted. But I say, 'twere to be wished, for the Honour of the English nation, that this had been all the foul Play in the Case, and that there had not been so many Thousand Guinea's imployed in this and other Trials, as the great Agitators thereof have lately confessed to have been. The Names of his Jury, as I find them in Print, are as follow: John Martyn. Thomas Short. Thomas Jeve. William Rouse. George Toriano. Hugh Noden. Jervas Seaton. William Butler. Robert Brough. William Fashion. James Pickering. Thomas Omeby. William JLovU tefgeU 49 When he found he must expect neither Favour nor Justice, as to the delaying of his Trial, he excepted against the Fore- man of the Jury, because not a Freeholder j which for divers and sundry Reasons, almost, if not all the Judges, having the Happiness to light on different ones, and scarce any Two of the same, was over-ruled, and given against him ; though that same Practice since declared and acknowledged one of the great Griev- ances of the Nation. His Indictment ran in these words, {He did conspire and compass our Lord the King, his Supre7ne Lord, not only of his Kingly State, Title, Power, and Government of this his Kingdom of England to deprive and throw down; but also our said Sovereign Lord the King to kill, and to Death to bring and put, and the ancient Government of this Kingdom of England to change, alter, and wholly subvert, and a miserable Slaughter among the Subjects of our said Lord the King, through his whole Kingdo?n of England to cause and procure, and In- surrection and Rebellion against our said Lord the King to move, procure, and stir up within this ; Kingdom of England.] And lower, [He and divers others did consult, agree, and conclude Insurrection and Rebellion against our Sovereign Lord the King, to move and stir up, and the Guards for the Preservation of the Person of our said Sovereign Lord the King, to seize and destroy^ Now that all this was not intended as Matter of Form only, we may see by the King's CounciPs opening the Evidence. The first says — [He was indicted for no less than conspiring the Death of the King's Majesty; and that in Order to the same, he and others did meet and conspire together, to bring our Sove- reign Lord the King to Death, to raise War and Rebellion against him, and to' Massacre his Subjects — And in Order to compass these wicked Designs, being assembled, did conspire to seize the King's Guards, and his Majesty's Person : And this (he tells the Jury) is the Charge against him. The Attorney-General melts it a little lower, and tells 'em the Meaning of all these Tragical Words, were A consult about a Rising — about seizing the Guards, and receiving Messages from E. of Shafstsbury concerning an Insurrection. Nor yet does the Proof against him come up so high even as this, though all Care was used for that Purpose, and kind Ques- E 50 %%t aaiegfterrt fl^actprolofl:?* tions put very frequently, to lead and drive the Evidence ; but one of them witnessing to any one Point. The first of whom was Col. Rumsey, who swears, That he was sent with a Message from Shaftsbury, who lay concealed at Wapping, to meet Lord Russel, Ferguson, fa^c, at Shepherd's, to know of the7n what Resolution they were co7tie to about t the Rising designed at Taunton — That when he came thither ', the Answer was made, Mr. Trenchard had failed 'em, and no more would be done in that Business at that Time. That Mr. Fer- guson spoke the ?nost part of that Answer; but my Lord Russel was present, and that he did speak about the Rising of Taunton, and consented to it. That the Company was dis- coursing also of viewing the Guards, in order to surprise 'em, if the Rising had gone on; and that some undertook to view 'em; and that the Lord Russel was by, when this was undertaken^ But this being the main Hinge of the Business, and this Wit- ness not yet coming up to the Purpose, they thought it conveni- ent to give him a Jog, to refresh his Memory, asking him, [Whether he found my Lord Russel averse, or agreeing to it ?] Who, no doubt, answered, Agreeing. But being afterwards in the Trial asked, Whether he could swear positively that my Lord Russel heard the Message, and gave any Answer to it ? All that he says is this, [That when he came in, they were at the Fire-side, but they all came from the Fire-side to hear what he said.] All that Shepherd witnesses, is, That my Lord Russel, &c. being at his House, there was a Discourse of surprizing the King's Guards ; and Sir Thomas Armstrong having viewed them when he came thither another Time, said, They were remiss, and the Thing was feizible, if there were Strength to do it, and that (upon his being questioned too, as Rumsey before him) whether my Lord Russel was there ? He says, He was, at that Time they discoursed of seizing the Guards. The next Witness was the florid Lord Howard, who very artificially begins low, being, forsooth, so terribly surprized with my Lord of Essex's Death, that his Voice failed him, till the Lord Chief Justice told him the Jury could not hear him ; in which very Moment his Voice returned again, and he told the Reason why he spoke no louder. After a long Harangue of ffliilliam %ovb KuggeL 51 Tropes and fine Words, and dismal General Stories, by which, as my Lord complains, the Jury were prepossessed against him, he at last makes his Evidence bear directly upon the Point for which he came thither — And swears, [That after my Lord Shaftsbury went away, their Party resolved still to carry on the Design of the Insurrection without him ; for the better Manage- ment whereof they erected a little Cabal among themselves, which did consist of Six Persons, whereof my Lord Russel and himself were Two ; that they met for that Purpose at Mr. Hamb- den's House, and there adjusted the Place and Manner of the intended Insurrection : That about Ten Days after they had another Meeting on the same Business at my Lord RusseVs, where they resolved to send some Persons to engage Argyle and the Scots in the Design — and (being asked too) that he was sure my Lord Russel was there.] Being asked whether he said anything, he answered, [That every one knew him to be a Person of great Judgment, and not very lavish of Discourse.] Being again goaded on by Jeffreys with a — But did he consent / [We did (says he) put it to the Vote, it went without Contradic- tion, and / took it that all there gave their Consent.] West swears. That Ferguson and Col. Rumsey told him, That my Lord Russel intended to go down and take his Post in the West, when Mr. Trenchard had failed 'em. Whose hear- say Evidence being not encouraged, Jeffreys ends very prettily, telling the Court, they would not use any Thing of Garniture, but leave it as it was. As for Rmnsey the first Witness : As for his Person — My Lord Candish proved on the Trial,- that my Lord Russel had a very ill Opinion of him, and therefore 'twas not likely he would entrust him with such a Secret. As to his Evidence, squeezed out of him, as it was, in both Brances of the Design, seizing the Guards, and the Rising of Taunton, he says in gross and general, That he was agreeing to one, and spoke about, and consented to the other. For his agree- ing to the seizing the Guards, he might think, as the Lord Howard does after, that Silence gives Consent; for it appears not, nor does he swear, that my Lord spoke one Word about it. But he himself, in his last Speech, which was not a Jesuit's, and which we have all the Reason in the World to believe exactly E 2 52 %\)t Mmtvn 9t£artprolog;^ true, since, as he himself says in it, \He always detested Lying, the? never so much for his Advantage ; and hoped none would be so unjust, or uncharitable, to think he'd venture on it in these his last Words, for which he was so soon going to give an Ac- count to the Great God, the Searcher of Hearts, and Judge of all Things :.] In this last Speech he protests, that at this Time of which Rtimsey swears, there was no ttndertaking of securing and seizing the Guards, nor none appointed to view or examine them, only some Discourse there was of the Feasibleness of it : He had' heard it mentioned as a Thing might easily be done, but never consented to as a Thing fit to be done. Now I'd ask any Man of Sense and Honour, who did but know my Lord Russel, let 'eni be never so much his Enemy, (if there were any such) which of these two they really judge most worthy to be believed? There is but o?ie against one. Rumsey, who either swore upon liking, for saving his Life, or was a Traftan, [That he was con- senting to the seizing the Guards] or my Lord Russel on his Death and Salvation solemnly affirming, [That he was so far from consenting to any such Thing, that there was not so much as any such Undertaking mentioned in the Company while he was with 'em.] Especially when 'tis observable, that Rumsey never instances in the Terms in which he gave his Consent, The same is to be said of the other Branch of his Evidence, as to the Message of the Insurrection, which, he says, he brought into the Room, found the Lord Russel and the rest by the Fire ; whence they all came to him, and heard his Message, and the Lord Russel discoursed of the Subject on't, and consented to't. To all which let's again oppose not only what he answered in his Trial, wherein he says, That he would swear he never heard, or knew of that Message, which Rumsey says he brought to them ; but also what he says in Confirmation thereof in his Speech, [7 shall aver, that what I said of my not hearing Col. Rumsey deliver any Message from my Lord Shaftsbury was true.] And a little before, [ When I came into the Room I saw Mr. Rumsey by the Chimney, tho? he swears he came in after.] One thing more is observable, That when West came to give in his Garniture-Evidence, he runs in a Length further than Rumsey, and remembers Rumsey had told him, what it seems KHtUtam Horn Uuml 53 he himself had forgot, That on Mr. Trenchard's failing 'em, my Lord Russel was to go in his Place, and take up Posts along in the West. And indeed had not West miss'd his Cue, and by imitating my Lord Howard's Example, begun first with Hear- say, he had made as stabbing an Evidence as e'er a one of the other — Or had they but let him run to the End of his Thred, and take Things methodically, as his Lordship did before him. For Shepherd, all must grant he says not a Syllable to the Purpose, or any thing which affects my Lord. He can hardly tell whether he was there when there was the Discourse of seizing the Guards, but speaks not a Word of my Lord's hearing, or in the leastwise consenting thereunto. As for my Lord Howard's Evidence, we may, without Scanda- lu?n Magnatwn, affirm, that every Lord is not fit to make a Privy -Counsellor j no, nor every witty Lord neither, especially in a Business of such a Concern. He does very well to say, the Council of Six all chose themselves; for had not he, given his own Vote for himself, hardly any Body else would have done it, since his Character is so notoriously different from that which he himself gives of my Lord Russel, [whom, he says, every one knew to be a Person of great Judgment, and not very lavish of Discourse^ For his Evidence, he too is so happy to have a better Memory than Rumsey, as well as West had ; and says, That the Duke #/* Monmouth told him, Rumsey had convey? d my Lord Russel to Shaftsbury, on whose Persuasion the Insurrection was put off a Fortnight longer. Of this Ru?nsey himself says not a Syllable. He says further, That when they had enquired how Matters stood in the Country, and the Duke of Monmouth had found Trenchard and the West-Country failed them, on this 'twas put off again — and this about the ijth or 1 8th 0/* October. Now this same action Rumsey speaks of, but takes a larger Scope as to the Time, the End of October, or Beginning of November, far enough from the 17th or 18th of the Month before. Rumsey says, On this Disappoint?nent of the Taunton Men and Tren- chard, Shaftsbury resolved to be gone. Lord Howard, — That he was so far from it, that he and his Party resolved to do it without the Lords, and had set one Time and t'other, and at last the ijth of November, which also not taking Effect, then 54 W$t atae0terrt S^artproloffy* Shaftsbury went off. As to his Evidence, which was closer — the Story of the Council of Six, besides the former Improba- bility, that he among all the Men in England should be chosen one of 'em ; 'tis remarkable, that in their former greater Consults at Shepherd's which he and Runtsey mention, the Lord Howard was never present, nor so much as touches pn't in his Evidence ; tho' here, if any were, the grand Affair of seizing the Guards, and the Answer to Shaftsbury about Taun- ton was concerted. All that appears of Truth in the Matter, seems to be what my Lord Russel acknowledges, — That those Persons named, met very often — that there was no formed Design, but only loose Talk about those Concerns. That there zuas no Debate of any such Thing as was sworn, nor putting any Thing in a Method : but my Lord Howard being a Man of a Voluble Tongue, and one who talkt very well, they were all delighted to hear him. Nor indeed does my Lord Howard positively swear, even supposing this formed Consult to be true, that my Lord Russel actually consented to it. Only — That he was there — and that he took it, and that he did give his Consent. 'Tis a very ill Cause that needs either a Lye or a Cheat to defend it. My Lord Russel himself being so ingenuous to acknowledge whatever of Truth, any that knew him will believe to be in his Part of the Design, 'twould be an Injury to his Memory to do any otherwise. It appears then from his own Acknowledgment, that Howard, Armstrong, and such others, had sometimes discoursed of ill Designs and Matters in his Company : And, as he says in his Speech, [ What the Heats, Wickedness, Passions, and Vanities of other Men had occasioned, he ought not to be answerable for, nor could he repress 'em.] Nay more, he did sufficiently disapprove those Things which he heard discoursed of with more Heat than Judgment. But for himself, declares solemnly again and again, That he was never in any Design against the King's Life, or any Man's whatsoever j nor ever in any Contrivance of altering the Government. If so, what then becomes of all the Story of the Council of Six? And is't not to be thrown among the same Lumber with the Old Famous Nags-head- Tavern Business ? ; Twill be still said he was an 111 Man, in being guilty by this aaiilltam ilorli Eu00ei> 55 very Confession, of Misprision of Treason. — Supposing this true — That was not Death, and he died, as he says, Innocent of the Crime he stood condemned for. And besides, every Lord has not Brow hard enough, nor Tongue long enough, nor Soul little enough, to make an Informer against others to save his own Life ? [/ hope, says he, no Body will imagine that so mean a Tho7ight could enter into me, as to go about to save my Life by accusing others. The Part that some have acted lately of that Kind, has not been such as to invite me to love Life at such a Rate. But all this does not depend on his naked Word, since the Evidence who swore against him, being such as were neither credible, nor indeed so much as legal Witnesses, the Accusation of itself must fall to the Ground. If legal, they were not credi- ble, because, as my Lord Delamere observes in this Case, they had no Pardons, but hunted, as the Cormorant does, with Strings about their Necks, which West, in his Answer to Wal- cofs Letter, ingenuously acknowledges, and says, [Tw through God's and the Kings Mercy, he was not at the apparent Point of Death.] That is, in a fair Construction, was not just turning over, but was upon Trial, to see whether he'd do Business, and deserve to 'scape Hanging. Much such an honourable Way of getting Pardon, as the Fellow who saved his own Neck by turn- ing Hangmaji, and doing the good Office to his own Father. Nor indeed was the great Witness, the honourable Lord, who cast this Noble Person, so much as a legal, any more than a credible Witness. No man alive has any Way to clear himself from the most perjur'd Villain's Malice, if he swears against him Point-blank, but either by Circumstance of Time, or invali- dating his very Evidence. Let any think of another Way if they can. The first of these was precluded. 'Twas that which had before been made Use of to sham off a truer Plot, and much more valid Evidence. But here Rumsey and the rest came to no determinate Time, but only about such a Time j about the End of October, or Beginning of November : And others cloud the precise Time in so many Words, that 'tis impossible to find it. All then that could be done, was as to the Person. Now what Thing can be. invented, which can more invalidate the Evidence any Person gives, than his solemn, repeated, voluntary Oath, indubitably proved against him, that such a Person is 56 W)t WLt&mn ^artprolog:?. innocent of that very Crime of which he afterwards accuses him ? If this be the Case or no here, let any one read the fol- lowing Depositions, and make an indifferent Judgment. My Lord Anglesey witnesses, He was at the Earl of Bedford's, after his Son was imprisoned, where carne in my Lord Howard, and began to comfort him, saying, He was happy in so wise a Son, and worthy a Person; and who could never be in such a Plot as that. That he knew nothing against him, or any Body else, of such a barbarous Design. But this was not upon Oath, and only related to the Assassination, as he says for himself in his Paring-distinction. Look then a little lower to Dr. Burnet, whom the Lord Howard was with the Night after the Plot broke out, and then, as well as once before, with Hands and Eyes lifted up to Heaven, did say, He knew nothing of ANY Plot, nor believed ANY. Here's the most Solemn Oath, as he him- self confesses voluntarily, nay, unnecessarily ; tho' perhaps in my Lord Bedford's Case, good Nature might work upon him. Here's the Paring of his Apple broke all to Pieces. No Sha- dow, no Room left for his Distinction between the Insurrection and Assassination, but without any Guard or Mitigation at all, he solemnly swears, he knew not of ANY Plot, nor believed ANY. But 'twas no great Matter, for the Jury were resolv'd to know and believe it, whether he did or no. There's but one little Subterfuge more, and the Case is clear. All this Perjury, all these solemn Asseverations he tells us were only to brazen out the Plot, and to outface the Thing for himself and Party. This he fairly acknowledges ; and let all the World be the Jury, whether they would destroy one of the Bravest Men in it, on the Evidence of such a Person ? But there's yet a farther Answer. His cousin Mr. Howard, who was my Lord's Intimate Friend, who secured him in his House, to whom he might open his Soul, and to whom it seems he did, he having made Application to Ministers of State in his Name, that he was willing to serve the King, and give him Satisfaction; — To him, I say, with whom he had secret Negotiations, and that of such a Nature — will any believe that he would outface the Thing here too ? That he would perjure himself for nothing, where no Danger, no Good came on't ? No certainly, his Lordship had aaiiiliam Horn Eu00ei- 57 more Wit and Conscience, and Honour ; he ought to be vin- dicated from such an Imputation, even for the Credit of his main Evidence ; for my Lord Gray, he tells us, was left out of their Councils for his Immoralities"; and had he himself been such a Sort of a Man, those piercing Heads in the Council would have certainly found him out before, and never admitted him among the7n. As for the very Thing, Mr. Howard tells it as generously, and with as much honest Indignation as possible, in Spite of the Checks the Court gave him. [He took it, says he, upon his Hon- our, his Faith, and as 7nuch as if he had taken an Oath before a Magistrate, that he knew nothing of any Man concerned in this Business — and particularly of the Lord Russel ; of whom he added, that he thought he did unjustly suffer.] So that if he had the same Soul on Monday, that he had on Sunday, (the very Day before (this could not be true that he swore against the Lord Russel. My Lord RusseVs Suffering was Imprisonment, and that for the same Matter on which he was tried, the In- surrection, not the Assassination. If my Lord Howard knew him guilty of that for which he was committed, tho' not the other, how could he then say, 'Twas unjustly done ? After all this, 'twould be almost superfluous to go any further, or insert the Evidence given by Dr. Tillotson, Burnet, Cox, and others, not only of his Vertuous and Honourable Behaviour, but especially of his Judgment about any Stirs, or Popular Insurrec- tions, — That he was absolutely against *e7n, — that J twas Folly and Madness till Things came to be regulated in a Parliamentary Way, and thought 'twould ruin the best Cause in the World to take any such Ways to preserve it. All this and more would not do, die he must, the Duke ordered it, the Witnesses swore it, the Judges directed it, the Jury found it ; and when the Sentence came to be pass'd, the Judge ask'd, as is usual, What he had to say why it shoidd not be pro- nounced f He answered, That whereas he had been charged in the Indictment which was then read to him, with Conspiring the Death of the King, which he had not taken Notice of before, he appealed to the Judge and Court, whether he were guilty within the Statute on which he was tried, the Witnesses having sworn an Intention of Levying War, but not of Killing the King, of which there was no Proof by any one Wit?iess. The Recorder 58 W$z Mzgtzvn 9£artprclog;p- told him, That was an Exception proper, and as he thought, his Lordship did make it before the Verdict. Whether the Evidence did amount to prove the Charge, was to be observed by the Jury; for ij the Evidence caine short of the Indictment, they could not find it to be a true Charge; but when once they had found it, their Verdict did pass for Truth, and the Court was bound by.it, as well as his Lordship, and they were to go according to what the Jury had found, not their Evidence. Now Pd fain know, what's the Reason of the Prisoner's being ask'd that Question, What he has to say for himself? Is't only Formality, or Banter ? He makes an Exception, which the Judge himself con- fesses proper. But who was Counsel for the Prisoner? Is not the Bench ? Or, does it not pretend to be so ? And why is not this observed by them in their Direction to the Jury ? The Recorder seems to grant it fairly, that the Evidence did not prove the Charge, and says, the Court was to go, Not according to the Evidence. Well, Evidence, or none, the Truth is, was not the Question ? For being found guilty, Sentence past upon him — whence he was removed to Newgate. While he was there, the Importunity of his Friends, as he says handsomly in his Speech, lest they should think him sullen or stubborn, prevailed with him to sign Petitions, and make an Address for his Life, tho* Hwas not without Difficulty that he did any thing that was begging to save it. But with how much Success, it may easily be guessed by any who knew the Duke's Temper, nor is it forgotten how barbarously his Lady and Children were repulsed, and the King's good Nature not suffered to save one of the best Men in his Kingdom. Dr. Burnet and Dr. Tillotson were with him much of the Time between his Sentence and Death ; where to the last, he owned that Doctrine, which other good Men, who were then of another Judgment, have since been forc'fc into, namely, the Lawfulness of Resistance against unlawful Violence, from whom soever it be. After the fruitless Applications for his Pardon ; after a Farewell and Adieu in this World, to one of the best of Women, who stood by him, and assisted him in his Trial, and left him not till now, he at last on Saturday the 21st of July went into his own Coach about Nine a Clock, with Dr. Tillotson and Dr. Burnet; whence he was carried to Great-Lincolns-hm-Field to the Scaffold Mlttitottt %or& l¨ 59 prepared for him, where, among all the numerous Spectators, he was one of the most unconcerned Persons there ; and very few rejoyced at so doleful a Spectacle, but the Papists, who indeed had sufficient Reason ; my Lord Powis's People expressing, as 'tis said, a great deal of Pleasure and Satisfaction. There, after he had again solemnly protested his Innocency, and that he was far from any Design against the King's Person, or of altering the Government : Nay, That he did upon the Words of a dying Man, profess, that he knew of no Plot against the King's Life or Government j and delivering one of the finest Speeches in the World to the Sheriff, he prayed by himself, and with Dr. Tillot- sorts Assistance ; and embracing him and Dr. Burnet, he sub- mitted to the fatal Stroaks, for the Executioner took no less than Three before he could sever his Head, which when 'twas held up, as usual, there was so far from being any Shout, that a considerable Groan was heard round the Scaffold. His Body was given to his Friends, and conveyed to Cheneys in Bucking- hamshire, where 'twas buried among his Ancestors. There was a great Storm, and many loud Claps of Thunder the day of his Martyrdom. An Elegy was made on him immediately after his Death ; which seems, by what we have of it, to be writ with some Spirit, and a great deal of Truth and good Will ; only this Fragment on't could be retrieved, which yet may not be unwelcome to the Reader. 'Tis done — he's crowrfdj and one bright Martyr more, Black Pome, is charg'd on thy too bulky Score. All like hiinself he mov'd ; so calm, so free, A general Whisper question'd — Which is He ? Deckt like a Lover, tho' pale Death's his Bride, He came, and saw, and overcame, and dy'd. Earth wept, and all the vainly pitying Croud : But Heaven his Death in Thunder groan' d aloud. The rest are lost — But he has better Justice done him by the honourable Parliament ; and if the World should possibly be so malicious and silly, in After-Ages, as some are in this, and ask, What have they done since their Meeting? Had we not a Nation saved, Peace preserved, and many other almost Miracles 60 %\}t Wzgmii St^arrprolog;^ to answer 'em ; yet this one Thing would be sufficient, That in this Sessions, they had Reversed the Judgment againt this Ver- tuous, Pious, and Honourable Lord. For his Character, if we'll believe the best Men, and those who knew him best, 'tis one of the most advantagious the Age, or indeed, our Nation has yielded. Those are great Words which Mr. Lev is ton Gower speaks of him on his Trial, but yet not a Syllable too big for his Merit, tho' they are very expressive of it. — That he was one of the best Sons, the best Fathers, the best Husbands, 'the best Masters, the best Friends, and the best Chris- tians. By others, That he was a most Vertuous, Prudent, and Pious Gentle?nan. — A Man of that Vertue, that none who knew him could think him guilty of such a Conspiracy. — A man of great Honour, and too prudent to be concerned in so vile and desperate a Design. — A Person of great Vertue and Integrity. — One, whom those he had long conversed with, never heard utter so much as a Word of Indecency against the King.] And others of the highest Quality, who had been often in his Company, say, That they had never heard any Thing from him, but what was honourable, just, and loyal. His Person was tall and proper ; his Temper even and agree- able, and such as rendered his Vertues even more lovely than they did him. His Piety and Devotion as unaffected, and yet as remarkable as his Love to the Church of England. The true Church of England, as he himself calls it, not those Tumours and Wens that grow upon it, and pretended to be not only Part, but All of it, in our late bad Times ; to whose H eighths and Extravagances he thinks it no Shame, in his Speech, to confess he could never rise. He was of a Noble Courage, which he did not express by Quarrels or Duelling, but serving his Country at Sea in the most dangerous Wars, and at Land in the Parliament, in more dangerous Councils and Debates. He was there a true Englishman — still the same ; you knew where he would be, for he never mov'd. A strenuous Asserter and Defender of his Country's Religion and Rights against all Opposers, and that in a Lawful and Parliamentary Method. He spoke little there, but always very home, and much to the Purpose — And that was as true a Character of him formerly recited, as if it had come from a better Man, That every one knew the Lord Russel to be a aaiftliam Horn l&uggeL 61 Person of great Judgment, and not very lavish in Discourse, Lastly, which will give no small Heightening to his Character, He had Mr. Johnson to his Chaplain. An Abstract of the Late Noble Lord RusseFs Speech to the Sheriffs ; as also of a Paper delivered by him to them at the Place of his much lamented Execution, July 21. 1683. In his Speech to the Sheriffs, he tells them, that for Fear of not being well heard, he had couched what he had to say upon that sad Occasion in the Paper he deliver'd them ; only he pro- tests his Innocence of any Designs against the King^s Person, or the then Government, and prays for the Preservation of both, and of the Protestant Religion; and in short, declares, that he forgives all the World, and wishes that all True Protesta7its may love one another, and not make Way for Popery by their Animosities. * In the Paper, He first declares himself composed for Death, and weaned from this World. Then he affectionately thanks God, as in general, so in particular, for his advantagious Birth and Religious Education, of which in that important Occasion, he found such happy and powerful Effects, as kept him up against the Fear of Death, and all other Discomposures, and armed him with such Assurances in God's Love and Mercy, as made the most joyful of the visibly saddest Moments of his Life. He professes to die as he had lived, a sincere Protestant oi the Church of England, tho' he never could come up to the Heighths of some ; wishes more Moderation both in Church-men and Dissenters j and that the Common Danger oi Popery might move them to lay aside their Differences, and all Persecuting Inclina- tions, as more unseasonable than at any other Time. He declares, he had a Notion oi Popery, as of an Idolatrous and Bloody Religion, and thought himself bound to act in his Station against it, notwithstanding the Power of the Enemies he was sure to meet with on that Account, &>c. But yet he pro- fesses he never thought of doing any thing against it basely or inhumanely, against the Maxims of Christian Religion, or the 62 <®%t WLtmvn Sl^artproloff^. Laws and Liberties of this Kingdom, for his Sincerity, in which, he appeals to God, renouncing all Passion, By-end, or Ill-Design, as also all Designs of changing the Government, which was in his Opinion, the best in the World, and for which, as well as his Country, which he valued above his Life, he was ever ready to venture it : Disclaims all Thoughts against the King's Life, denying even the Lord Howard to have said any thing tending to prove it. Prays sincerely for the King and Nation, and wishes they may be mutually happy in one another ; that the King may be truly a Defender of the Faith ; that the Protestant Religion and Kingdom may flourish under him, and he be happy in both Worlds. As to his Share in the Prosecution of the Popish Plot, he de- clares he acted sincerely in it, as really believing, as he still did, the Truth of such a Conspiracy, and disclaims his Knowledge of any Practices with the Witnesses, which he protests against as abominable, and disowns Falshood or Cruelty ever to have been in his Nature. He persists in his Opinion, that Popery was breaking in upon the Nation, and grieves to see Protestants instrumental to it ; declares his Fears of the Sufferings the Protestant Religion was like to undergo, and bewails the publick and shameless Impiety that abounded ; and modestly admonishes all Persons, and par- ticularly his Friends, Well-wishers to the Protestant Cause, that were defective, to live up to its Principles. Then he declares his Submission to God's Pleasure, freely forgives his Enemies, and desires his Friends to seek no Revenge for his Blood. After which, he looks back, and gives some little Touches concerning his past Behaviour, and the Manner of his Treatment at his Trial. He confesses, he moved much for the Bill of Exclusion, as the only effectual Remedy to secure both the King's Life, the Protes- tant Religion, and the Frame of the Government, he thinking none of them could be safe so long as there was any Hopes of a Popish Successor; and that the Limitations proposed to Bind the Duke, were effectual Remedies against those Fears, because the Nation could never be easie and safe under a King without a Prerogative : But yet imputes his prese?it Sufferings to the aaiilltam Horti l&ttSJstel. 63 Revengeful Resentments some Persons retained for his Earnest- ness in that Matter. Next, as to his conspiring to seize the Guards, he disowns that ever he was concerned in any such Design, or ever heard talk of any such Thing as designed, but only once, as of a Thing feazible, against which likewise he warmly declared himself, and said, the Consequence of it was so like to end in Massacring the Guards in cold Blood, that he could not but abhor the Thoughts of it, as approaching too near the Popish Practice ; at which the Duke of Monmouth taking him by the Hand, cried out affec- tionately, that he saw they were both of a Temper ; he adds on that Occasion, that he always observed in that Duke an Abhorrence to all Base Things. He proceeds to shew how he went to the Meeting at Mr. Shep- herd's, at the Duke of Monmouth's earnest Request, chiefly to endeavour to prevent any such disorderly Proceedings, as the Duke feared would be otherwise put on by some hot Men, whose rash Courses he did accordingly most vigorously oppose, and yet was condemned only for not discovering them, tho' he endeavoured to reform them, because he would not stoop to so mean a Thought, as that of going about to save his Life by accusing others for Crimes that they only talkt of, and that, as we may partly gather from his Discourse, he had effectually dis- suaded them from too, so that his Intention was good, and his Part in that Transaction, even in the strictest Sense of Law, but a Misprision of Treason, and therefore he declares he cannot but think the Sentence of Death past against him to be very hard, and he by a strange Fetch, brought within the Compass of the Statute of Treason, of Edward the Third. He moreover adds, that he had so convincing a Sense of his own Innocence in that Case, that he would not betray it by Flight, tho' much pressed to it. He next excuses his saying so little at his Trial, saying, he hoped it lookt more like Innocence than Guilt : Adding, that he was advised not to confess Matter of Fact too plainly, because it would certainly have brought him within the Guilt of Misprision, and so he thought it better to say little, than by departing from the Ingenuity he had always prac- tised, by using little Tricks and Evasions, to make the last and solemnest Part of his Life so notably different from the pre- 64 W$t WLt&mn St^artprolog;?- ceding Course of it, as such a Conduct would have made it. He farther subjoins, That he never pretended great Readiness in Speaking, and advises those Gentlemen of the Law that have it, to use it more conscienciously, and not to run Men down, and impose on Easie and Willing Juries by Strains and Fetches, dr'c., the Killing unjustly by Law, being the worst of Murthers. He then, as in several other Places, repeating his Wishes, that the Rage and Revenge of some Men, and the Partiality of Juries, may be stopped with his blood, and so after a small Hint, how by the Importunity of his Dearest and most Vertuous Lady, and some other Dear Friends, he had been prevailed upon against his Inclinations, to Address, tho' ineffectually, for his Lifej he concludes with a fresh Protestation of his Innocency, and a Devout Prayer to God, suitable to that sad Occasion. CAPTAIN WALCOT, &c. APTAIN Walcot and his Fellow- Sufferers, in Order of Time, should have gone first, he being convicted before my Lord Russel, and executed the Friday, as he on Saturday. But my '.Lord Russet's Fate having so immediate a Dependance on the Earl of Essex's, and all the Plot hanging on him ; especially they two making the greatest Figure of any who suffered on this Occasion; it lookt more proper and natural to begin with them, and reserve the other to this Place. Captain Walcot was a Gentleman of a considerable Estate in Ireland, but more remarkable for the rare Happiness of having Eight Children all at once living, and most of all, for his Love to his Country, which cost him his Life. We can have but little Dependance, as has been before hinted, on the Publick Papers relating to these Concerns, especially in his Case, where Cartwright was engaged. What appears to us, and we may believe most reasonable, and what's agreed on of all Hand, is — That West, Rumsey, and, I think, one more of 'em, had frequent Discourses, at least, of Killing the King and Duke — so horrid and barbarous a Thing, and so like the Practice and Principles of those worst of Men, the Papists ; that as every true Fnglis/i- Captain ftfllalcot, $c, 65 man, and good Christian must needs conceive a Detestation and Horror at the very Mention of it ; so, no Doubt, it will be very acceptable to such to find when the Thing is enquired closely into, which has partly been done before, and shall now be finished, to find no Probability of any thing real in the Bottom, none engaged in it, but two or three Knaves, and one Fool. No person of Honour or Character, who had heard so much as any Discourse of it, but what immediately disapproved, or detested it, as much as any good Man ought to do : Tho' some of 'em, if there were more than Walcot, might hear such mad Discourse, as my Lord Russel says, the Wickedness, Passions, and Vanities of other Men might have occasioned ; and yet not believing any thing in it more than Words, nor think they were obliged to turn Informers and Hangmen ; which because they did not do, they suffered themselves. And this any reasonable Man will, I doubt not, upon a little free thinking, acknowledge to be Walcofs Case, and no further. The pre- tended Crime for which Walcot suffered, and which West and others witnessed against him, was — Consulting the Death of the King, and charging the Guards, at his Return from New-market, while the dreadful Blunderbuss was to be fired into the Coach by Rumbold, or some others. His Privacy to Discourses about the King's Death was but Misprision. For his acting in it, they could not have pitched on a more unlikely Man to command a Party in so desperate an Attempt as charging the Guards, than one that was Sick and Bedrid of the Gout, as about this Time, and often besides, the Captain was. Nor seems Wesfs Pre- tence more likely — That he refused to be actual in the Assas- sination, because of the Baseness of it, but offered to charge the Guards, while others did it — much as wisely and tenderly, as if he had denied to cut a Man's Throat, but consented to hold his Hands while others did it. This he denies with Indignation in his Speech, and [Appeals to all that knew him, Whether they thought him such an Idiot, that he should not understand 'twas the same Thing to engage the King's Guards, whilst others killed him; or to kill him with his own Hands?] Here then, 'tis plain, lyes the Pinch of the Matter ; West and Rumsey, &c. had been frequently discoursing at that Bloody, Villanous Rate ; West was most impatiently eager of having it done — He pro- F 66 %ty WLt^mn ^artgrolog:?* posed the Lopping 'em at a Play, which he said would be [in their own Calling?] For some of those who are charged with this foul Business, as Promoters, or so much as Approvers thereof, were they Inno- cent or Guilty as to that Particular ; I can assure the Reader I have the same thought of 'em, that Juvenal had of Sejanus, and can say as he does, Nunquam si quid mihi credis, amavi. But however one may add as he does, Sed quo accidit sub crimine ? Quisnam Delator f Quibus Indiciis f Quo Teste ? And almost resolve all these Questions to the same Way, with a — Nil horum. Never was any Party without many ill Men — This, no Doubt, had too many whose ill Lives both discredited, and in Probability, ruined the best Cause in the World, as my Lord Russel intimated in his Speech. Some of these, not having the Fear of God before their Eyes, might have such traiterous Designs ; nay, and by their own Confession, it appears they had so — But let's not however be hurried away in a Popular Stream, which generally runs very muddy, [to condemn those, who, whatever Personal Faults they may have had, how turbulent their Nature, or bad their Morals, or ill their Character, yet seem to be no Way concerned in so bloody and barbarous a Conspiracy, how home soever it might be charged upon 'em. West and Rumsey were the main Pillars, and almost only Witnesses on which the Credit of that Action depended, who appear all through the great and almost sole Managers thereof, and who accuse others for being concerned in it. What and how much their Credit weighs, we have already hinted, but shall yet confront it with further Testimonies relating to this Matter, and that of Dying Men, who could expect no Pardons in this World, nor t'other for a Falshood. Besides, Riunbold^s solemn Protestation ; see Walcofs Speech and Paper, wherein he as deeply affirms, as a Man can do, [That West bought Arms for this Villanous Design (which cannot be expressed with Detestation enough) without any Direction of his — nay, without any Direction, Knowledge, or Privity of his.] West says in his Answer to this, as well as in his Evidence, [That Walcot joined in the Direction about the Nature and Size of those Arms ; that he was very intimate and familiar with this Rum- bold, who was to be the principal Actor in the Assassination.] Captain aaialcot, $c* 67 But Rumbold's Death before recited, clears himself, and Walcot, and shews us what West is. In another Place he affirms — That Walcot told him Ferguson had the chief Management of the intended Assassination. . Rwnbold's hard Name, as has been said already, Ferguson's ill Name, and the Absence of 'em both, brought 'em in all Probability into the Business; and Walcofs being past answering for himself or them, made it very advisable to charge so much on him. So in the same Nature Ferguson was the Author of that Expression Walcot had from West, — Ferguson undertook for the Duke of Monmouth, — Ferguson proposed to see for an Opportunity between Windsor and Hampton- Court. — The Men to commit the Assassination were all provided by Ferguson, Rwnbold, &c. And I remember another of 'em, or. he himself, talks of Fifty Men engaged for the very Action. Now as meer good Nature, and the Love I have to my Countrymen, will never suffer me to believe there could be so many Englishmen found, and Protestants too, who would consent to kill their King ; never any one having acknow- ledged such a Design besides poor Hone, who was so stupid, he could not give one sensible Answer to what Cart-wright asked him at his Death ; So plain Testimony, and Dint of Fact and Reason, forces me to conclude these Persons here charged were not guilty. See what Rouse says of it — He was told, they did not intend to spill so much as one Drop of Blood. But most particularly Holloway, [He could not perceive Ferguson knew anything of the New-market Design, but Rumsey and West were deep in't.] Again, [Holloway askt West who was to act the Assassination? To which he could give but a slender Answer, and could, or would name but Two Men, Rumbold and his Brother.] Just such probable Stuff as Coll edge's seizing the King by himself at Oxford, [So that (he goes on) we found they had but few Men, if more than Two, and no Horses, only a Parcel of Arms he shewed at a Gunsmith's.] And lower at another Time, [West only named Rumsey and Rich. Good- enough as concerned in the Assassination — West again proposed the Assassination, but none seconded him — Rumsey was for the old Strain of killing the King, to which not one consented — He could never find above Five concerned in it. — He heard Walcot speak against it— I knew Ferguson to be against any such Design. F 2 68 C&e Wltgmn S^artprolog;^ Upon the whole, the World is left to its Liberty to believe, at least Three Dying Mens Asseverations, against those who so plainly swore others Necks into the Halter, to get their own out, that West himself is not ashamed to own in his forementioned Answer, That he was still in Danger of Death, though not so eminent as it had been ; not at the apparent Point of Death. And at the Close of this Paper, — If it shall please the King to spare my Life for my Confession, it is a great Happiness, &*c. Which Part of his Evidence every Body will easily believe. From all which, here lyes a fair Supposition of the Innocency . of this Captain, and others of what they were Accused, found Guilty, Sentenced, and Died for ; it being on Wesfs Evidence, and such as his, that he and others were Arraigned and Con- demned ; the Captain's Defence being much the same with what he says in his Speech. ; Tis well known, that the Witnesses against Captain Walcot swore for their own Lives with Halters about their Necks ; and it is as true that most of the Witnesses had talked at a mad Rate, in the hearing of some of those whom they destroyed ; but see, what Captain Walcot in a most solemn Manner declared with his last Breath. An Abstract of Captain Walcot's Speech. Captain Walcot denied any Design of killing the King, or of engaging the Guards, whilst others killed him; and said that the Witnesses invited him to Meetings, where some things were discoursed of, in Order to the asserting our Liberties and Properties; which we lookt upon to be violated and invaded : — That they importuned and perpetually sollicited him, and then delivered him up to be hanged — That they combined together to swear him out of his Life, to save their own j and that they might do it effectually, they contrived an Untruth. — That he forgave them, though guilty of his Blood; but withal, earnestly begged, That they might be observed, that Remarks might be set upon them, whether their End be Peace; and he concluded (with what made Sir Roger E Estrange a great deal of Sport, but yet Heaven has made it good) That when God fcatfr a 2D2Horfc to oo, fee toitf not toant Instruments. With him was tried Rouse, who was charged with such a Parcel of mad Romance, as was scarce ever heard of ; and one Captain Mialcot, $c* 69 would wonder how Perjury and Malice, which used to be sober Sins, could ever be so extravagant as to hit on ? t. He was to seize the Tower ; pay the Rabble, uncase the Aldermen, to be Pay-master and Flea-master General, and a great deal more to the same Tune. In his Defence he says no great Matter, but yet what looks a thousand times more like Truth than his Accusation ; That the Tower-Business was only Discourse of the Feazibleness of the Thing, (as Russet's about the Guards) but without the least Intent of bringing it to Action; That all he was concerned in any real Design, he had from Lee, and was getting more out of him, with an Intentioi to make a Dis- covery. But it seems Lee got the Whip-hand of him ; they were both at a kind of Halter- Combat j Rouse's Foot slipt, and Lee turned him over, and saved his own Neck. His Dying- Words. Mr. Rouse declared, that he was told, that They did not inte?id to spill one Drop of. Blood j and affirmed that Lee, the Witness against him, did (by his Evidence) make him the Author of the very Words, that came out of his, the said Lee's, own mouth. A Brief Extract of Captain Walcofs Prayer. O Lord, our God, Thou art a God of present Help in Time of Trouble, a God, that hast promised to be with thy People in the Fire and in the Water. O Lord, we pray thee, that thou wilt afford thy Presence to thy poor suffering Servants at this Time, O Lord, thy Servant that speaketh doth confess, that the Iniquities of his Heels have justly overtaken him ; O do thou bathe each of our Souls in that Fountain set open for Sin and for Uncleanness. O do thou enable every one of us, from the inward Evidence of thy Spirit, to say with thy Servant yob, That we know and are assured that our Redeemer lives. O give us some inward Tastes of those Heavenly Joys that we hope through the Mercy of Jesus Christ, in a little Time to have a more full Fruition of. O Lord, do thou speak Peace to every one of our Consciences ; tho' we lye under a Sentence of Death from Man, we beg that we may have a Sentence of Life Eternal from our God ; and though we meet thee, O Lord, in a Field of 70 %ty WXz$mn fl^attgrologj* Blood, we beg that thou wilt come to meet with us in a Field of Mercy. O Lord, though we have been Prodigals, we desire to return unto our Father's House where there is Bread enough. O enable us to come unto thee as Children to their Parents. Lord, put to thy helping Hand ; Lord, teach us truly to leave no Sin unrepented of, in any one of our Hearts. And, O Lord, we beg that with us thou wilt give us Leave to recommend unto thy Care our Poor Wives and Children : Thou hast promised to be the Father of the Fatherless, and the Husband of the Widow j and thou hast commanded us to cast the Care of them upon thee. O do thou make Provision for them, and enable them to bear this severe Stroak with Patience. O Lord, we also beseech thee in the Behalf of these poor Kingdoms wherein we are, that thou wilt be merciful to them, prevent Divisions among them, heal all their Breaches, compose their Differences, make all that are thine of one Heart and Mind in the Things of thee our God. Lord, favour us with thy Mercy, assure us of thy Love, stand by us in this difficult Hour, take us into thine own Care, cause thy Angels to attend us, to convey our Souls as soon as they are divided from our Bodies, into Abraha?7i's Bosom. All which we beg for the Sake of thy Son Jesus Christ, in whom, O Lord, this little Time do thou give us Hearts to give thee all Glory, Honour and Praise, now and for ever more, A?nen, Sweet Jesus, Amen. Hone was accused, and owns himself guilty of a Design to Kill the King and the Duke of York, or one, or neither, for 'tis impossible to make any Sense of him. When they came to suffer, Walcot read a Paper, in which was a good rational Con- fession of his Faith ; then comes to the Occasion of his Death, for which he says, he neither blames the Judges, Juty, nor Council, but only some Men, that in Reality were deeper con- cerned than he, who combined together to swear him out of his Life to save their own, and that they might do it effectually, contrived an Untruth, &^>c. He forgives the World and the Witnesses : Gives his Friends advice to be more prudent than he had been; prays that his may be the last Blood spilt on that Account j wishes the Ki7ig would be 77ierciful to others; says he knew nothing of Ireland, and concludes, with praying God to have Mercy upon him. He had then some Discourse with Captain S&lalcot, $c* 71 Cartwright, wherein he tells him, That he was not for contriv- ing the Death of the King, nor to have had a hand irttj and being urged with some Matters of Controversy, tells him, He did not coine thither to Dispute about Religion, but to die Religiously. But though Dying be a serious Business, yet 'tis almost impos- sible to read Hone's Discourse with the Dean, without as violent Temptations to laughter as Compassion. Never was so exact an Imitation of the Scene of the Fisherman and Kings in the Rehearsal, when he tells 'em Prince Pretty-man killed Prince Pretty -?nan. One would think him very near in the same Case with Bateman, who came after him. His Replies are so incon- gruous, that there is hardly either Sense or English to be made out of 'em. But the poor Fellow talks of Snares and Circum- stances, and no Body knows what, and says in one Line, He was to meet the King and Duke of York, but he did not know when, where, nor for what : In the next, he was for killing the King, and saving the. Duke; and when ask'd the Reason, answers, the only sensible Thing he said all through, That he knew no Rea- son, that he did not know what to say to't. And when the Dean charges him with the Mtirderous Design, — That he knew as little of it, as any poor silly Man in the World. Rouse comes next, gives an Account of his Faith, professing to die of the Church of England, tells his former Employment and Manner of Life, acknowledges he heard of Clubs and Designs, but was never at 'em, and a perfect Stranger to any thing of that Nature. Gives a Relation of what past between him and his Majesty on his Apprehension. Talks somewhat of Sir Thomas Player, the Earl of Shaftsbury, and accommodating the King's Son, as he calls it, tho' not while the King reign'd. Then falls upon Lee, and the Discourse they had together, who, as he says, swore against him on the Trial those very Words he himself had used in pressing him to undertake the Design. Speaks of a Silver Ball which he proposed to be thrown up on Black-Heath, and after some Discourse with the Ordinary, gives the Specta- tors some good Counsel. Then they all three singly prayed ; and then the Sentence was executed upon 'em. 72 %ty H&t&tzvn S^artprologp. ALGERNON SIDNEY, ESQ. HE next Victim to Popish Cruelty and Malice, was Colonel Algernon Sidney, of the Ancient and Noble Name and Family of the Sidneys, deservedly Fa- mous to the utmost Bounds of Europe j who, as tne Ingenious Mr. Hawles observes, was meerly talkt to death, under the notion of a Common- wealths Man, and found guilty by a Jury who were not much more proper Judges of the Case, than they would have been had he writ in Greek or Arabick. He was Arraigned for a Branch of this Plot at Westminster the 17th of Novemb. 1683. where, tho' it cannot be said the Grand Jury knew not what they did, when they found the Bill against him, since, no Doubt, they were well instructed what to do ; yet it must, that they found it almost before they knew what 'twas, being so well resolved on the Case, and agreed on their Verdict, that had he been Indicted for breaking up an House, or robbing on the Highway, 'twas doom'd to have been Billa vera, as much as 'twas now. For tho' the Indictment was never presented to 'em before they came into the Hall, yet they immediately found it : The Substance whereof was, [For a Conspiracy to depose the King, and stirring up Rebellion, and writing a libel for that Purpose^ The most Part of the Evidence brought against him, was only Hear-say, as against my Lord Russel j nay, West, whose Evidence was then refused, now was admitted to tell a long Story of what he had from one and t'other. Pumsey's was much of the same Nature. In the rear came that never failing Evidence, the Lord Howard, who witnesses he was one of the Council of Six, and engaged one of the deepest in their Con- sults. And more than that, exercises his own Faculty very handsomly, in an account of two Speeches Mr. Hambden made on the Occasion, which indeed were such fine Things, that some might think it worth the while to swear against a Man, only to have the Reputation of reciting 'em ; and whom they are most like, Mr. Hamden, or my Lord's own witty self let any Man judge. The next Evidence was a Paper, said to be of the Prisoner's writing, which was found in his Study. The Substance of which Zl$tvnon feiDtup, Qfefq* 73 was an Enquiry into the Forms of Government, and Reasons of their Decays : The Rights of the People, and the Bounds of Soveraignty, and Original of Power. In which were those heinous, treasonable Expressions, [The King is subject to the Law of God as a Man, to the People who made him such, as a King, &c.] And examples of evil Kings and Tyrants, whom sometimes a Popular Fury had destroyed ; at others, the Ordines Regni either reduc'd, or set them aside, when their Government was a Curse instead of a Blessing to their People. Well, what Treason in all this, and a great deal more? Nothing but a Jesuit' s enchanted Telescope could have found any in it. If there were any Mistakes, as he says in his Speech, they ought to have been confuted by Law, Reason, and Scripture, not Scaf- folds and Axes. First, 'Twas not proved to be his writing, nor did he confess it ; Treason and Life are critical Things : One ought to be as fairly proved, as t'other to be cautiously proceeded against. Tho' he might write it, he had the Liberty of an Englishman, not to accuse himself : The very same Thing which was afterwards put in Practice by those Reverend Per- sons, who, later than he, and cheaper too, defended their Coun- tries Liberty with only the Loss of their own. But owning he writ it, How very few, if any Things therein, are not now gene- rally and almost universally believed, and are the Foundation of the Practice, and Satisfaction of the Conscience of every Man, tho' then confuted with the Single Brand of Common-wealth Principles, being indeed such as all the World must, whether they will or no, be forced into the Belief of, as soon as Oppres- sion and Tyranny bears hard upon 'em, and becomes really unsupportable ? But supposing they were now as wicked Prin- ciples as they were (called) then ; yet what was that to the then present Governors ? He answered Filmer for his own Satisfac- tion, or rather began to do it, many Years before the Makers of this Plot dreamt of that, or bringing him into it : Kept it private in his own Study, where it might have lain till Dooms- day, had not they fetch'd it out to make somewhat on't. 'Twas suggested, and Innuendo 'd, that this Book was written to scatter among the People, in Order to dispose 'em to rebel, as 'tis in the Indict- ment. But how ridiculous that is, any one will see who con- siders the Bulk of it, which was such, that, as he says in his 74 *3p&e Wlz$mn 9^art^rolDo:^ Speech, [The fiftieth Part of the Book was not produced, nor the Tenth of that read, tho* de desired it, and 'twas usual; and yet after all, as it had never been shewn to any Man, so 'twas not finished, nor could be in many Years.] Now is this a Business likely to be calculated for a Rebellion; when it could neither be finished till several Years after 'twas over ; and besides, if it had, the Bulk made it so improper to be dispersed for that Purpose for which 'twas pretendedly designed ? No, those who are to poison a Nation in that Manner, know better Things, and more likely Ways. 'Tis to be done in little Pamphlets, and Papers easily read over, understood, and remembred, as the Declara- tion-Gentlemen t'other Day, very well knew. But still here being not a Syllable, in these Papers of King Charles, any more than of the King of Bantam, or the Great Mogul, against whom they might as well have made it Treason ; 'twas all supplied by a fine Knack, call'd an Innuendo, that is in English, such Inter- pretation as they would please to affix on his Words. Thus when he writes Tarquin, or Pepin, or Nero, they say, he meant King Charles; and so, scandalously of him, as well as wickedly of the Gentleman, make a Monster and a Ravisher of their King, and then take away another's Life for doing it. There was a Minister I have somewhere read of, who was accused for writing a libel against Queen Elizabeth, and her Government ; and the Fact there, 'tis true, lay as this does upon Innuendo's, though much more plain and pregnant. — But all the Punishment in- flicted on him, though thought severe enough, reached not his Head, the Loss of his Hand being thought sufficient, while with that which was left, he pulled off his Hat,, and prayed God to bless the Queen. — But this was under a mild Reign, and truly Protestant Government. As for my Lord Howard's Evidence, had the Jury been any but such as they were, and Sidney describes them, they would not have hang'd a Jesuite upon the Credit on't ; he having, one would think, that read the Trials, taken a Pride in damning himself deeper and deeper against every new Appearance in publick, on purpose to try the Skill and Face of the Council in bringing him off again. To the Evidence brought against him in my Lord RussePs Case, he had taken Care that these follow- ing should be addec}* jaigertton fefotwp, €<% 75 The E. of Clare witnesses, that he said, after Sidney's Impri- sonment, if questioned again, He would never plead — (Had it not been a pleasant Thing for my Lord Howard to have been pressed to Death for not speaking?) And that he thought Colonel Sidney as innocent as any Man breathing ; Mr. Ducas says the same, so does my Lord Paget, and Mr. Edward, and Philip Howards, and Tracy, and Penwick, and Mr. Blake, that he said he had not his Pardon, and could not ascribe it to any Reason, but that he must not have it till the Drudgery of Swear- ing was over. But though there was no reasonable Answer could be given to all this ; tho' Sidney pleaded the Obligations my Lord Howard had to him, and the great Conveniency he might think there might be in his being hang'd, since he was some Hundreds of Pounds in his Debt, which would be the readiest Way of paying him ; and had besides, as it appeared, a great mind to have the Colonel's Plate secured at his own House ; tho' never Man in the World certainly ever talk'd stronger Sense, or better Reason, or more evidently batter'd the Judges, and left 'em nothing but Railing. — 'Twas all a Case with him, as well as the others ; and the Petty Jury could as easily have found him Guilty, without hearing his Trial, as the Grand Jury did, as soon as e'er they saw the Bill. Never was any thing more base and barbarous, than the summing up the Evidence and Directions to the Jury, who yet stood in no great Need of 'em : Nor more uncivil and sawcy a Reflection on the Noble Family and Name of the Sidneys than the Judges saying — That he was born a Traitor. Never any thing Braver, or more Manly, than his Remonstrance to the King for Justice, and another Trial : Nor lastly, more Roman, and yet truly Christian than his end. The Brave Old Man came up on a Scaffold, as unconcerned as if he had been going to fight, and as lively as if he had been a Russel. In his last Speech he gives almost all the Substance of all those Books which have been lately written in the Defence of the late Tram sactions, and no disgrace to 'em neither ; since Truth and Reason are eternal, and one and the same from all Pens and Parties, and at all Times ; however there may be some Times so bad, that they won't bear some Reason^ any more than some Doctrine. — He there says as much in a little as ever Man did— {That 76 W$t Wit&tzvn 2t£artgrolog;p* Magistrates were set up for the good of Nations, not e contra.] If that be Treason, K. Charles the First is guilty on't against himself, who says the same Thing. [That the Power of Magis- trates is what the Laws of the Country make it : That those Laws and Oaths have the Force of a Contract, and if one Part is broken, f other ceases.] And other Maxims of the same Neces- sity and Usefulness. — He, besides this, gave a full Account of the Design of his Book, of his Trial, and the Injustice done him therein ; of the Jury's being packt, and important Points of Law over-ruled j and ends with a most Compendious Prayer, in which he desires God would forgive his Enemies, but keep 'em from doing any more Mischief — And then he laid down his Head, and went to Sleep. TO THE KING'S MOST EXCELLENT MAJESTY, The Humble Petition of Algernon Sidney, Esquire, Sheweth, That your Petitioner, after a long and close Imprisonment, was on the Seventh day of this Month, with a Guard of Soldiers brought into the Pallace-Yard, upon a Habeas Corpus directed to the Lieutenant of the Tower, before any Indictment had been exhibited against him : But while he was there detained, a Bill was exhibited and found ; whereupon he was immediately car- ried to the King's Bench, and there ArraignM In this Surprize he desired a Copy of the Indictment, and leave to make his Exceptions, or to put in a special Plea, and Council to frame it ; but all was denied him. He then offered a Special Plea ready ingross'd, which also was rejected without reading : And being threatned, that if he did not immediately plead guilty or not guilty, Judgment of High Treason should be entered, he was forced contrary to Law (as he supposes) to come, to a general issue in pleading not guilty. November 21. He was brought to his Trial, and the Indict- ment being perplexed and confused, so that neither he nor any of his Friends that heard it, could fully comprehend the Scope of it, he was wholly unprovided of all the Helps that the Law Algernon feftnup, Cfefq* 77 allows to every Man for his Defence. Whereupon he did again desire a Copy, and produced an Authentick Copy of the Statute of 46 Ed. 3. whereby 'tis enacted, That every Man shall have a Copy of any Record that touches him in any manner, as well that which is for or against the King, as any other Person ; but could neither obtain a Copy of his Indictment, nor that the Statute should be read. The Jury by which he was tried, was not (as he is informed) summoned by the Bailiffs of the several Hundreds, in the usual and legal Manner, but names were agreed upon by Mr. Graham, and the Under- Sheriff, and Directions given to the Bailiffs to summon them : And being all so chosen, a Copy of the Pannel was of no Use to him. When they came to be called, he excepted against some for being your Majesty's Servants, which he hoped should not be returned, when he was prosecuted at your Majesty's Suit ; many more for not being Freeholders, which exceptions, he thinks, were good in Law ; and others were lewd and infamous Persons, not fit to be of any Jury : But all was over-ruled by the Lord Chief Justice, and your Petitioner forced to challenge them peremptorily, whom he found to be pickt out as most suitable to the Intentions of those who fought his Ruin ; whereby he lost the Benefit allowed him by Law of making his Exceptions, and was forced to admit of Mechanick Persons utterly unable to judge of such a Matter as was to be brought before them. This Jury being sworn, no Witness was produc'd who fixed any thing beyond Hearsay upon your Peti- tioner, except the Lord Howard, and them that swore to some Papers said to be found in his House, and offered as a second Witness, and written in an Hand like to that of your Petitioner. Your Petitioner produced Ten Witnesses, most of them of Eminent Quality, the others of Unblemisht Fame, to shew the Lord Howard's Testimony was inconsistent with what he had declared before (at the Trial of the Lord Russel) under the same Religious Obligation of an Oath, as if it had been legally ad- ministred. Your Petitioner did further endeavour to shew, That besides the Absurdity and Incongruity of his Testimony, he being guilty of many Crimes which he did not pretend your Petitioner had any Knowledge of, and having no other Hope of Pardon, than 78 Cfje Wltmvn S^attprolog^ by the Drudgery of swearing against him, he deserved not to be believed. And Similitude of Hands could be no Evidence, as was declared by the Lord Chief Justice Keiling, and the whole Court in the Lady Carr's Case ; so as that no Evidence at all remained against him. That whosoever wrote those Papers, they were but a small Part of a Polemical Discourse in Answer to a Book written about Thirty Years ago, upon general Propositions, applied to no Time, nor any particular Case ; That it was impossible to judge of any Part of it, unless the whole did appear, which did not ; That the Sense of such Parts of it as were produced, could not be comprehended, unless the whole had been read, which was denied ; That the Ink and Paper sheweth them to be writ many Years ago ; That the Lord Howard not knowing of them, they could have no Concurrence with what your Petitioner is said to have designed with him and others ; That the Confusion and Errors in the writing shewed they had never been so much as reviewed, and being written in an Hand that no Man could well read, they were not fit for the Press, nor could be in some Years, though the Writer of them had intended it, which did not appear. But they being only the present crude and private Thoughts of a Man, for the Exercise of his own Understanding in his Studies, and never shewed to any, or applied to any par- ticular Case, could not fall under the Statute of 25 Ed. 3. which takes Cognizance of no such Matter, and could not by Construc- tion be brought under it ; such Matters being thereby reserved to the Parliament, as is declared in the Proviso, which he desired might be read, but was refused. Several important Points of Law did hereupon emerge, upon which your Petitioner, knowing his own Weakness, did desire that Council might be heard, or they might be referred to be found specially. But all was over-ruled by the Violence of the Lord Chief Justice, and your Petitioner so frequently interrupted, that the whole Method of his Defence was broken, and he not suffered to say the Tenth Part of what he could have alledged in his Defence. So the Jury was hurried into a Verdict they did not understand. Now, for as much as no Man that is oppressed in England, can have Relief, unless it be from your Majesty, your Petitioner jaiprnort fefonep, Qfeq* 79 humbly prays, that the Premises considered, your Majesty would be pleased to admit him into your Presence ; and if he doth not shew, that 'tis for your Majesty's Interest and Honour to preserve him from the said Oppression, he will not complain though he be left to be destroyed. An Abstract of the Paper delivered to the Sheriffs on the Scaffold on Tower-Hill, December 7. 1683. by Algernon Sidney, Esquire, before his Execution. First having excused his not speaking, as well because it was an age that made Truth pass for Treason, for the Proof of which, he instances his Trial and Condemnation, and that the Ears of some present were too tender to hear it, as because of the Rigour of the Season, and his Infirmities, &*c. then after a short Reflection upon the little said against him by other Wit- nesses, and the little Value that was to be put on the Lord Howard's Testimony, whom he charges with an Infamous Life, and many palpable Perjuries, and to have been byassed only by the Promise of Pardon, &>c. and makes, even tho' he had been liable to no Exceptions, to have been but a single Witness : He proceeds to answer the Charge against him from the writings found in his Closet by the King's Officers, which were pretended, but not lawfully evidenced to be his, and pretends to prove, that had they been his, that they contained no Condemnable Matter, but Principles, more safe both to Princes and people too, than the pretended high-flown plea tor Absolute Monarchy, composed by Filmer, against which, they seemed to be levelled ; and which, he says, all intelligent Men thought were founded on wicked Principles, and such as were destructive both to Magis- trates, and People too. Which he attempts to make out after this manner. First, says he, if Filmer might publish to the World, That Men were born under a necessary indispensable Subjection to an Absolute King, who could be restrained by no Oath, &*c. whether he came to it by Creation, Inheritance, &r*c. nay, or even by Usurpation ? Why might he not publish his Opinion to the con- trary, without the Breach of any known Law ? W T hich Opinion he professes, consisted in the following Particulars. 80 Wit Mt$mn S^artprolDg:^ I. That God had left Nations at the Liberty of modelling their own Governments. 1. That Magistrates were instituted for Nations, and not e contra. 3. That the Right and Power of Magistrates was fixed by the standing Laws of each country. 4. That those Laws sworn to on both Sides, were the Matter of a Contract between the Magistrate and People, and could not be broken without the Danger of dissolving the whole Govern- ment. • 5. That Usurpation could give no Right ; and that Kings had no greater Enemies than those who asserted that, or were for stretching their Power beyond its Limits. 6. That such Usurpations commonly effecting the Slaughter of the Reigning Person, &c. the worst of Crimes was thereby most gloriously rewarded. 7. That such Doctrines are more proper to stir up Men to destroy Princes, than all the Passions that ever yet swayed the worst of them, and that no Prince could be safe, if his Murderers may hope such Rewards ; and that few Men would be so gentle as to spare the Best Kings, if by their Destruction a wild Usur- per could become God's Anointed, which he says was the Scope of that whole Treatise, and asserts to be the Doctrine of the best Authors of all Nations, Times, and Religions; and of the Scrip- ture, and so owned by the best and wisest Princes, and particu- larly by Lewis \\th oi France, in his Declaration against Spain, Anno 1667. and by King James of England, in his Speech to Parliament 1603, and adds, that if the Writer had been mistaken, he should have been fairly refuted, but that no Man was ever otherwise punished for such Matters, or any such Things referred to a Jury, &>c. That the Book was never finished, &>c. nor ever seen by them whom he was charged to have endeavoured by it to draw into a Conspiracy : That nothing in it was particularly or maliciously applied to Time, Place, or Person, but distorted to such a Sense by Innuendo's, as the Discourses of the Expul- sion of Tarquin, &c. and particularly of the Translation made of the Crown of France from one Race to another, had been then applied by the then Lawyers Innuendo's to the then King of England; never considering, adds he, that if such Acts of Algernon fefonep, (Egq* 81 State be not allowed good, no Prince in the World has any Title to his Crown, and having by a short Reflection shown the Ridicu- lousness of deriving Absolute Monarchy, from Patriarchal Power, he appeals to all the World, whether it would not be more advantagious to all Kings, to own the Derivation of their Power to the Consent of willing Nations, than to have no better Title than Force, S^c. which may be over-powered. But notwithstanding the Innocence and Loyalty of that Doc- trine, he says, He was told he must die, or the Plot must die, and complains, that in Order to the destroying the Best Protes- tants of England, the Bench was filled with such as had been Blemishes to the Bar; and instances, how, against Law, they had advised with the King's Council about bringing him to Death, suffered a Jury to be ftackt by the King's Sollicitors, and the Under-Sheriff admitted fury-?nen no Free-holders, received Evidence not valid; refused him a Copy of his Indictment, or to suffer the Acts of the 46th of Ed. 3. to be read, that allows it had over-ruled the most Important Points of Law, without hearing, and assumed to themselves a Power to make Constructions of . Treason, though against Law, Sense, and Reason, which by the Stat, of the i$th of Ed. 3, by which they pretended to Try him, was reserved only to the Parliament; and so praying God to forgive them, and to avert the Evils that threatned the Nation, to sanctifie those Sufferings to him, and tho' he fell a Sacrifice to Idols, not to suffer Idolatry to be established in this Land, &c. He concludes with a Thanksgiving, that God had singled him out to be a Witness of his Truth, and for that Good Old Cause, in which from his Youth he had been engaged, &*c. His Epitaph. Algernon Sidney fills this Tomb, An Atheist by declaiming Romej A Rebel bold, by striving still To keep the Laws above the Will ; And hindring those would pull them down, To leave no Limits to a Crown. Crimes damn'd by Church and Government, Oh whither must his Soul be sent ! G 82 %ty Mtgmn Q£)artptoloa;£> Of Heaven it must needs despair, If that the Pope be Turn-key there ; And Hell can ne'er it entertain, For there is all Tyrannick Reign, And Purgatory's such a Pretence, As ne'er deceiv'd a Man of Sense. Where goes it then? Where't ought to go, Where Pope and Devil have nought to do. His Character. There's no Need of any more than reading his Trial and Speech, to know him as well as if he stood before us. That he was a Person of extraordinary Sense, and very close thinking, which he had the Happiness of being able to express in Words as manly and apposite as the sense included under 'em. He was owner of as much Vertue and Religion, as Sense and Rea- son ; tho' his Piety lay as far from Enthusiasm as any Man's. He feared nothing but God, and loved nothing on earth like his Country, and the just Liberties and Laws thereof, whose Consti- tutions he had deeply and successfully inquired into. To sum up all, He had Piety enough for a Saint, Courage enough for a General or a Martyr, Sense enough for a Privy- Counsellor, and Soul enough for a King ; and in a Word, if ever any, he was a perfect English-man. MR. JAMES HOLLO WAY. R. Holloway was by Trade a Merchant; but his greatest Dealing lay in Linen Manufacture, which, as appears from his Papers, he had brought to such a H eighth here in England, as, had it met with suitable encouragement, would, as he made it appear, have em- ployed 80000 Poor People, and 40000 Acres of Land, and be 200000 Pounds a Year Advantage to the Publick Revenues of the Kingdom. The Return of the Habeas Corpus Writ calls him, [Late of London, Merchant] though he lived mostly at 9®v+ 3|ameatg. 101 time, all St. PauVs three times not coming near the third Part of the Doctor's. Had they hang'd him, they had been merciful ; had they flead him alive, 'tis a Question whether it had been so much Torture. How good and merciful those Persons, who will vindicate this worse than barbarous and inhumane Action, are, let the World and future Ages be Judges ; in the mean while we'll safely defy all History to shew one Parallel of it either on Man or Dog, from the Creation of the World to the Year 1685. But there needs no more Aggravation of it, or urging what is plain enough, that the thus dealing with him, even supposing his Crime as great as they'd have it, was yet the highest Affront and Indignity even to Humanity it self. 'Twill, besides this, be an unanswerable Observation — That it had been impossible for a Man to have held out the Second Whipping, after the First was over, while the Womids were fresh about him, and every new Stroak more than a double Torment, either to have under- gone this without Confession, or dropping down dead with Extremity of Pain, had he not both had Truth on his side, and also a more than common Support and Assistance from him who saw his Innocency. This Whipping of his being the greatest Confirmation to his Evidence that was possible to be given. After his Return to Prison, after all this Usage, yet if possible, more barbarous, tearing off the Plaisters from his Wounds, crushing him with Irons, thrusting him into Holes and Dungeons, and endeavouring to render him as infamous to the Nation, and all the World, as Cain or Judas; he bore up against all this, and more, with so strange and almost miraculous a Patience, that during his four Years Imprisonment, he was never once heard to sigh, or manifest any Impatience under his Condition. He refused all the Offers of the Jesuits, who even after this had the Impudence to propose to him his recanting his Evidence. He had still a strong Belief that he should see better Times, and get his Freedom again, which he had in that General Goal- delivery, granted all England by the then Prince of Orange's Heroick Undertaking. Since that, he has presented his Ca^e and Petition to the Parliament ; to the House of Commons, as well as the House of Lords : And tho' the Honourable House of Lords were offended at what they judged a Slight of their Jurisdiction, in his Addressing to the House of Commons, 102 %%t mmtvn S^artproloa:?. while his Cause lay before them, and exprest their Resent- ments thereof accordingly ; the Commons have since that taken his Case into Consideration, and, as well as four succed- ing Parliaments before 'em, own'd his Cause, and censured the Proceedings of Jeffreys against him ; and 'tis not doubted but will appoint him Rewards suitable to his Sufferings and Merit. , His Character. His Firmness and Courage, even perhaps to Fault, have been visible through these mentioned, and all his other Actions since he appeared on the Publick Stage : His Passions are lively and warm, and he is the worst made for a Dissembler, an Hypocrite, or a secret Villain, of any Man in the World. Nor have all his Sufferings much sunk him, tho' he be a little altered in this Par- ticular. He's open and frank, and speaks whatever he thinks of any Persons or Things in the World, and bearing himself justly enough, on his Services to his Country, is not careful enough to keep that Guard which others do, on his Words and Actions. He has Wit enough, a pleasant Humour, and sufficiently diver- tive to those he knows, and his Learning is far from con- temptible. He has a good Library, is *no mean Critick in the Greek, and well acquainted with the Schoolmen and Fathers. He's Owner of as much Generosity as any Man, and as much Tenderness to any in Misery, scorning to strike at those below him ; an Example of which very remarkakle there was in his in- humane Judge's Fall, he being almost the only Person who has been heard to pity him ; though one would have thought he should have been the last. In a Word, as this present Age has now begun to do him Justice, so 'tis not doubted but they'll make an End on't, and those succeeding join with it in making honourable Mention of his Name and Services to the Protestant Religion. I0 3 MR. JOHNSON. UCH about the same Time, the Pious, Reverend, and Learned Mr. Johnson met with much the same Usage. His great Crimes were, — Being my Lord RussePs Chaplain, writing the Famous Julian the Apostate ', and endeavouring to persuade the Nation , not to let themselves be ?nade Slaves and Papists, when so many others were doing their part to bring 1 em to it, And 'tis a Question whether any Man in the World, besides his Friend the Reverend Dr. Burnet, did more Service with his Pen, or more conduced to our great and happy Revolution, both among the Army, and in other Places. For some of these good Services, he was Accused, Imprisoned, Tried, and Condemned to be divested of his Canonical Habit, and be whipt as far as Oats was before him ; which was performed, and which he underwent, as he did, with Courage and Constancy above a Man, and like a Christian and a Martyr. He remained ever since in the King's Bench, till the Prince's Coming delivered him. The following Paper was Published by Mr. Samuel Johnson, in the Year 1686. For which he was Sentenced by the Court of King's Bench, (Sir Edward Herbert being Lord Chief Justice) to stand Three Times on the Pillory, and to be Whipped from Newgate to Tyburn; which Barbarous Sentence was Executed. An Humble and Hearty ADDRESS to all the English Protestants in this present Army. Gentlemen, Next to the Duty which we owe to God, which ought to be the Principal Care of Men of your Profession especially (because you carry your Lives in your Hands, and often look Death in the Face ;) the Second Thing that deserves your Consideration, is, the Service of your Native Country, wherein you drew your first Breath, and breathed a Free English Air : Now I would desire you to consider, how well you comply with these Two Main Points, by engaging in this present Service. 104 %ty Wlt&tzvn S^artprolog:^ Is it in the Name of God, and for his Service, that you have joined yourself with Papists ; who will indeed fight for the Mass- Book, but burn the Bible ; and who seek to extirpate the Protes- tant Religion with your Swords, because they cannot do it with their own ? And will you be Aiding and Assisting to set up Mass- houses, to erect that Popish Kingdom of Darkness and Desolation amongst us, and to train up all our Children in Popery ? How can you do these Things and yet call yourselves Protestants ? And then what Service can be done your Country, by being under the Command of French and Irish Papists, and by bring- ing the Nation under a Foreign Yoak ? Will you help them to make forcible Entry into the Houses of your Country-men, under the Name of Quartering, contrary to Magna Chart a and the Petition of Right ? Will you be Aiding and Assisting to all the Murthers and Outrages which they shall commit by their void Commissions ? Which were declared Illegal, and sufficiently blasted by both Houses of Parliament (if there had been any Need of it) for it was very well known before, That a Papist cannot have a Commission, but by the Law is utterly disabled and disarmed. Will you exchange your Birth-right of English Laws and Liberties for Martial or Club- Law, and help to destroy all others, only to be eaten last yourselves? If I know you well, as you are English-men, you hate and scorn all these Things. And therefore be not unequally yoaked with Idolatrous and Bloody Papists. Be Valiant for the Truth, and shew yourselves Men. The same Considerations are likewise humbly ofc ed to all the English Seamen, who have been the Bulwark of this Nation against Popery and Slavery ever since Eighty-Eight. His Character. If any Man does not know what he is, let him read his Julian, and Defences of it ; he'll find there as much clear, close, fair Reason, Scripture, and Law, as ever an ill Cause had brought against it, or a good one for it. Mr. Johnson is a true Chiistian Stoick ; and tho' he writes warmly, thinks and ac;s as coldly as any Man in Chistendom. His Piety is as remarkable as his Constancy, and his Universal Chanty as both. — But he's st^ll al ; ve ; and 7 us better to say no more of him, than either too much, or too little. io5 MR. DANGERFIELD. IS Father was a Gentleman, who lived in good Fashion at Waltham-Abby, or thereabout, — had been a great Sufferer for K. Charles L, and charged this his Son on his Death-bed, after his Dis- covery of the Plot, never to have any Hand in any thing against the Government ; which he promised, and faithfully observed. He was a Man of Business and Courage, and therefore employed by the Papists, while among 'em, in their desperate and most dangerous Concerns. He was then of a Religion that excused and encouraged the worst Things he or any other Man could be guilty of. The great Thing which brought him on the Stage, was Mrs. Celiers Business, called, The Meal-Tub-Plot. The Papists had designed to kill two Birds with one Stone— Divert the Laws and People from themselves, and ruin their Enemies ; for which End they had among 'em made a Plot to bring in the Best Men and Patriots of the Kingdom into a pretended Design against the King and Government, by a kind of an Association, like that which afterwards took better Effect. And for this Transaction Mr. Dangerfield was made Choice of, a List of their Names, with the Design, being by him, according to Order, con- veyed into one Colonel ManseVs Chamber — But he was disco- vered, and s^ed in the Design, and acknowledged all the In- trigue, giv -o so clear an Account of it, that they had never to this very Day the Impudence to pretend any Contradiction, or Trip in his Evidence, nor any other Way but flat Denial. But there was somewhat yet deeper in the Case, which he afterwards revealed in his Depositions before the Parliament, That he was employed by the same Party to kill the King, and encouraged and promised Impunity and Reward, and Part of it given hi?n by a Great Person for that End. When the Stream ran violently for Popery, he went over, for Security, into Flanders, but continued no longer there ; and re- turning back, he was some time after seized, and carried before the Council, where, before the King himself, persisting to a Tittle, in all his former Evidence, he was committed to Newgate; and after having lain there for some Time, Petitioned for a Trial, 106 %l)z HSimtvn S^artproiosp. which they could not do upon any Account but Scandalum Magnatum, and that in a Matter which lay only before the Par- liament to whom he had revealed it. Yet for that he was tried, and found Guilty, as Wi. Williams the Speaker afterwards for Licensing his Narrative, by Order of- Parliament. He was to undergo the same Whipping Oats and Johnson did. Before he went out, he had strong Bodings of his Death, and chose a Text for his Funeral Sermon in the . . . oi Job, There the Wicked cease from troubling, and there the Weary are at Rest. Saying, He was confident they had such a particular Malice against him, he should nfer return alive : Confirmed the Truth of all his former Evidence, and took a last Farewel of his Friends. After the Sentence was executed on him, in his Return home, one Francis stabb'd him into the Eye with a sort of a Tuck in the End of his Cane, which touching his Brain, he was hardly ever sensible after, but died of the Wound in a few Hours, not without great Suspicion of Poison, his Body being swoln and black, and full of great Blains all over. The Murderer fled, but was pursued by the Rabble, who had torn him to Pieces, had not the Officers rescued him. He defended and justified the Fact whilst in Newgate, saying, He had the Greatest Men in the Kingdom to stand by himj to whom after his Trial, and being found Guilty upon clear Evidence, great Applications were made, which had been successful for his Pardon, had not Jeffreys himself gone to Whitehall, and told the King, He must die, for the Rabble were now throughly heated. Attempts were made to bribe Mr. Dan- gerfield's Wife, that she might consent to the Pardon of her Husband's Murderer ; but she too well deserved to be related to him, to sell his Blood ; and had an Appeal ready against him, had he been Pardoned. So the poor State-Martyr was hanged, as Coleman was before him. Mr. Dangerfield's Body was con- veyed to Waltham-Abby, with several Coaches attending it, and there handsomly buried. He has left one Daughter behind him who, if she lives, will be the true Child of her Father. His Character. The worst of his Enemies have owned he was a Man of Wit, Courage, and Business ; all which he reconciled the best of any 9£r* 2DangerfieHi. 107 one ; he had as much Address, as perfect and great a Presence of Mind, in whatever Exigences, as can be met with. He was the best Companion, the best Friend in the World, and as generous an Enemy. He did nothing but what lookt very hand- some ; and there was a Charm in the meanest, and something most bewitchingly pleasant in the most indefensible of his Actions. He could do almost every Thing, and 'tis hard to say what he did with the greatest Grace. In a Word, all that knew him must say, That he wanted nothing but an Estate to have made him as compleat a Gentleman as most in England. An ELEGY upon Mr. Thomas Dangerfield. Go then, Mount-on / Wing through the midway Air, And Godfrefs hovering Shade shall meet thee there : A Thousand Martyrs thou, a Wound all tfer, Thy mighty Mind leaps out at every Pore, My rising Heart boils high, the ungrateful World shall see Something Immortal, something worthy thee : Larger within the Noble Image grows, Free, like thy Blood, the uncalPd Satyr flows ; But not one Tear to affront thy pious Grave, Russel and Generous Essex died less Brave ; Love, Pity, Friendship, all their Claims begin, But Vengeance drowns 'em all. and roars aloud within, And thou Heir's Ehud, by black Rome decreed, Hallow'd and Blest to do the Glorious Deed ; If his dear Name can ought of Passion move, If there are any Strings in Blood or Love, EVn at Hell Gates I'll reach and stab thee there ; Nor can so just a Rage be too severe. Tho' my wild Satyr means a Nobler Wound. Others I strike, thee but at the Rebound. Like him well tell 'em to their Teeth 'tis true. Defie a Stab, and give the Devil his due. And if you Bright Exalted Names above, Know any thing but how to Sing and Love, Look down dear Sharer of my Soul, and see A Vengeance worthy of thy Friend and Thee. 108 %^t Witmvn S^artprolog:?. A Friend's Revenge may thy black Murtherers feel, Oh may my Pen dart Groves of poison } d Steel, Till through their lustful Veins the Venom rolls, And with a double Rot consumes their very Souls. None, none ! shall 'scape the just and deadly Blow, None that these Grand Intrigues of Murder know, From Conclaves down to little Kings below : Let Laureats belch a pocky Herd's Fame, When Can&ieb o'er with some cramp Hebrew Name, As their 'good Fellow Catholick Jews before Nick-name a Calf Jehovah, and adore. No well-wrote Story, no Romance can yield, A Greater, Nobler Name than ®an0erfkl& ; Nothing he wants, tho' Fate no Title brings, That single Name's above an Earl's, a Duke's, a. King's, When Ease and Plenty their Brisk Forces join, Or the heigh Veins are swoln with lusty Wine ; When we on Honour's lofty Turrets go, And look with Scorn on little Crouds below, Ev'n Fools and Cowards bold and witty grow, When Jeffreys on the Bench, Ketch on the Gibbet fits, Some take ev'n them for Courages and Wits, Nay, Nobler Souls than those, if Fortune frown, Oft broke and conquered meanly tumble down. If Fate unjust Success to Tyrants give, Ev'n the Heroick Brutus dares not live. But greater he's still what he was before, Nay, greater yet, is all himself and more, Tho' man ungrate he ever yet has known, Tho' they forsake him, he's not yet alone. For some too Honest, and for some too Brave, How should he thrive, when neither Fool nor Knave, He's not alone, another Spirit attends, A nearer Comfort than a Thousand Friends. ^eabena ! see how bravely he maintains his Ground ! Tho' with whole Hells of Devils baited round ; Charge on, charge thicker yet ! He stands, he stands ! The Blest above look down, and clap their Hands; Envy the ungrateful world so great a Bliss, $%v. SDatifferffetou 109 And almost wish to change their Place for his. Unbrffid he stands, with Hopes of Victory, Knowing his greatest Conquest was to die. Thus the Brave Lion, when base Hounds pursue, And seize on every Pass and Avenue ; Tho' from within his mighty Genius call, And KneVs of sudden Thunder bode his Fall, Walks careless on, walks on and looks about, Terror and Death, thro' all the ignoble Rout, And sells his Life so dear, tho' pleas'd to die, 'Tis hardly worth the while for them to buy. Nothing his equal Temper e'er could move, No, tho' a very Jeffreys sate above. Had some good Heath? nish Pilate, been preferr'd, To fill the Place, he had at least been heard, But he so fair a Measure must not find, For Justice noisfs grown deaf as well as blind. Justice is deaf, but yet her Mouth's so wide, So loud she yells as deafens all beside. If she's return'd from Heaven, as all must say, Sure she call'd in at Billingsgate by the Way, Raving, her Collar from her Neck she tore, Knowing another would become it more. Thus the Gay Mad-man twists Straw-wreaths, and then He knows not why, tears 'em to Dust again. Ah My stick Fate I Who can thy Methods know ? Jeffrey's above, and Dangerfield below ! But since no Friend, nor Poet can invent, Deeper Damnation for his Punishment, May he be Jeffreys still, and ne'er repent. And now the Fatal Day begins to dawn, The Curtain of the last sad Scene is drawn j Pale let it ever rise with doubtful Light, Hardly distinguisht from preceding Night. May Birds obscene and ominous round it stray, May troubled Ghosts keep dismal Holiday. Curse on each Hour — But hold, for he looks down, And over his calm Face has drawn a Frown. Forgive, bright Soul! the Starts of a distracted Mind ; no %\)t Wimtvn S^artprolos:?* The Poet now the Christian leaves behind. Withdraw that just, that now unusual Frown. Blest be the happy Day that brought thy Crown : Thy Radiant Crown of Martyrdom, which brings A thousand Joys more than the Crowns of Kings j A thousand Joys without a thousand Stings. Soon rose the Sun so great a Day to see, Soon rose the Sun but not so soon as he. A brighter Sun, Assistance down he calls ; He draws all Heav'n within his dusky Walls. So laught the Apostles at HelPs baffled Rage, And sung in spite of Fetters and a Cage. Around Hearings Battle?nents bright Legions wait. And crouding Seraphs open wide the Gate. One who of Martyrs has peculiar Care, Is sent to whisper in his Soul, Prepare; Or else his Guardian- friend had made him know, That long expected Message — He must go, For sure he knew the worst their Rage could do ; He knew, he saw it all, and scorned it too. Pray on, Great Soul ! and like thy Master be, For those that now begin to murder thee ; Thy Master thus, thus thy Lord Jesus dy'd ; He must be scourged before he's crucify'd. Though milder Jews far more good Nature have ; They Forty Stripes, Jeffreys Four Hundred gave. Far more had he at first from Vertue fell ; Ten times a fitter Friend for Ro?ne and Hell ; Ten times less than this Torment would alone, For ten times worse, and ten times more attone : Blood might ha ? done, had not fair Tears done more, And Penitence washt him whiter than before. Nay were I Papist too — Pd say those precious Show'rs which from him fell Might rescue eifn a Jeffreys out of Hell. But this is Mercy, tender Mercy all : One Death is for a ®an0erjiel& too small. All Hell had doubly sworn he should not live, And thef 11 as soon repent, as they'll forgive. ®$v. 2Dang;erfieItJ. in High rampt great Lucifer above his Throne, Where Monarch Absolute he Reigns alone, Shaking the Scaly Horror of his Tail, He swore this last Plot could not, should not fail. A Pursuivant was sent, nor far he sought, But soon this Engine to the Presence brought, The milder Furies started, when he came, The Ghosts div'd down thro' Seas of melted Flame, And heard and felt new Torments at his Name ; Th' Old Dragon only smiled and thus began, Dear part of me ! Dear S07ne thing more than Man ! Let Parry, Clement, RaviVack combine, And cram their Souls great Murderer into thine. I love a Man that's resolute and brave, Not silly Consciences, or Custom } s Slave. Safety you're sure of,' that at least is due ; Nor must we (Sir) forsake such Friends as you. Go then and prosper I Thus I thee inspire With Sparks of my own noble gen'rous Fire ! Chuse what you like ! Rewards you need not fear ! %t £Hx\tz\X(sT, or <0fc£ertoator fare. Go on, and act a Deed so worthy me, That Hell may both admire and envy thee ! Away he comes ; a double Francis now, Half Devil, half Papist, rivell'd on his Brow ; Two Strings to's Bow, for fear one should not do, Stelletto's sometimes fail, take Poison too. Against such powerful Reasons, who'll presume To speak ? These, these are the Two Keys of Rome; These to blest Peter's Successor were given, Opening Hell to themselves, to others Heav'n. Poison, which o'er so many a Convert brings, Poison, the safest Pill for resty Kings. Not all the Reasons in strong Box e'er pent, Can challenge half so much of Argument. Steel, that can sometimes work as great a Cure, Where Patients th' Operation can endure. Steel, which tho' so unlike it, poison Apes, Drest in as many neat, convenient Shapes. ii2 W$z mmtvn 9£artprolojnn A Knife, when the French Harry is to die, Anon a Sword, a Razor by and by. But now, since holy Church requires it, 'twill Turn Coward, and sneak into Canes to kill. Close by the Hero, now HelPs Viceroy stood, And views him crusted o'er with Wounds and Blood, Who all unmov'd, tho' all one Clod of Gore, His Master's Characters undaunted wore ; Such Marks he wore as Scythians ne'er invent, At which all but a Francis would relent. He Hell and his Great Master does invoke, Then with a generous Fury gives the Stroak. Wretch, well thou aim'dst, too well thou'st struck his Head, Thou'st pierced his Eye, or else he'd lookt thee dead, Tho' wounded all, tho' like great Sampson blind, Ah could he too like him his Enemies find, No Fiend, no Devil should have repriev'd at all, He'd crusht thy pois ? nous Soul away, and Kill'd thee with his Run Monster, for thy cursed Life, and see [Fall. If Vengeance cannot run as fast as thee. The very Rabble's mov'd, the unthinking Croud ; Th' unweildy Clock's wound up, and strikes aloud. Tho' Hag-rid now so long, yet 'tis not tam'd : Revenge they name, but ah 'tis only nam'd. Ah had their Clacks but held Heaven had lookt down, And with kind Thunder fir'd the ungrateful Town. Pity the noble Stain was washt with Blood, It like a Noble Canker should have stood. Consuming, rotting, poisning great and small, Cottage and Pallace, Beams and Stones, and all. 'Tis well at last he merits their Esteem : Now, now they love, yes now they pity him. Revenge they with unknown good Nature cry, With unsuspected Ingenuity / But to please Fools 'twa'nt worth the while to die. Yes Brutes I at last no doubt you think him brave, O he's done well ; his Death will Charges save. Revenge, Revenge runs through the opening Town, Revenge they cry and hunt the Murd'rer down. } 9£r. 2Demg;erfieU>. 113 } The Beast was earth'd indeed, but 'twas m vain : (Cain fled, but God had set a Mark on Cain,) Close, close they hunt, and lug him out again. May Conscience and the Rabble him attend, While we our Duty pay to such a Friend. Some Tears e'en by Religious Leave are due, Some Tears, and some well-meaning Curses too. Can Mothers weep when their soft Infants Bones Kind Papists crush against the kinder Stones. When the dear Pledges from chase Nuptials born, Are for their milder Hounds in pieces torn : Sleeping and smiling from their quivering Breast Are broacht on Pikes, and sent to longer Rest. Can Man himself restrain unmanly Cries, When his dear other Self is rape 'd before his Eyes f Nay, can he Groans, Curses, Tears themselves forbear, To see his Babes hang in their Mother's Hair ? All this have the good Catholicks done before : All this they now prepare again, or more. And he the Handsel of their Malice tries : To see if yet their Hands be in, he dies. Tare off his useless Plaisters you that can, You that have more, or less than Hearts of Man, Look their he floating lyes, o'erflown, and drown'd In Tides of Poison' d Gore rolFd from the weltring wound. ■All o'er beside it dropt in gentle Rains, But here burst down in Seas and Hurricanes. What dire Convulsions shake that Beauteous Frame, None of its self is left besides the Name. How ghastly Horror rears its dismal throne, Where once sat Charms that could be there alone ? Dreadful distortions rack that bloated Face, And gone are every Beauty, every Grace. His gloomy Eye-ball rolls in mortal Pain ; And feels for the departed Light in vain. Where are those Eyes that could so well inspire Love's soft, fair, charming, harmless, lambent Fire. Blood flows without, as Poison flows within, And half bears up his black distended Skin. I ii4 Cfje fl&z&tzvn S^artprolog;^ Where manly Friendship reign'd and softer Love, Blood, Blood is all below, and Horror all above. Pity be gone, and Nobler Rage succeed ! Others besides a Dangerfield shall bleed. Bring forth the Prisoner, let him, let him live, For I no more than Jeffreys can forgive. for an Age of Torment ! Might he lye Like Titzus rackt, like the keen Vulture I. Jove's own Ambrosia can't be half so good As his broyVd Flesh, nor Nectar as his Blood. But what's one Mouth ? Loose him, and cry 'tis he ! Loose him among the well teeth? d Mobile ! They'll quarter him, not by the Arm or Leg, But into Atoms tare HelPs Scanderbeg. What a bare hanging ! Such a Death were fit For some well-meaning, harmless Jesuit, One who poor Soul knows but their little Things, Burning proud Cities, pois'ning, stabbing Kings. He hath a Deed well worth Dajnnation done, And perfected those Stroaks they but begun. Hanging / Why they almost deserv'd that Curse Who dar'd but think that he deserv'd no worse. The best, the bravest Thing for which almost 1 could be foolish, and forgive his Ghost, Is that he triumphs in the Blood he spilt, And bravely stands and glory 's in his Guilt ; He's hit me full, and I'd no worse invent, No, no, 'twas pity he should e'er repent. But ye who hallow with deserv'd Applause, A better Martyr for a better Cause. You who to Fate and Fortune scorn to yield Who still dare own you're Friends to Dangerfield j And you dear Partner of his Joy and Grief, The worthiest him, the best, the tend' rest Wife, Who most, who best adore his Memory, Who only I must grant lov'd more than me. Bring his dear All which at your bottom lyes, His fair Remains which I shall ever prize, 2£r* 2Dang;erfieUJu 115 Whose Father's vigorous Soul plays 1'oundher Eyes. All, all in a full Ring together come, And join your Prayers and Curses round his Tomb. Curst be the Wretch who did him first ensnare, Too mean to let his Name have here a Share. A double Curse for them that thought it good, Such a Wife should sell such a Husband's Blood. Still double, double, till Fm out of Breath, On all that had a Hand, a Finger in his Death, My Curse, a Friend's, a Wife's, an Orphans's too, For all of this side Damning is their due. The little Plagues of Egypt to begin : Ashwedn'sday's Curses for each lesser Sin. With whate'er angry Heaven since could find To bait and lash impenitent Mankind. Gouts, Feaversy Frenzies, Claps, Consumptions, Cramps, Whatever may put out their stinking Lamps ; May kind Abortions in some lucky Hour, The Fruit and Hope of their vain Lust devour : Or if they're born, may the unwholesome Fry, Creep only like young Toads abroad, and die. Heartily thus let's curse, and if vain Pity move, Straight think again on manly Rage, and love, Swear by his Blood, and better while we live, This on our selves if we his Blood forgive. And may whoe'er his Murd'rer's Death deplore, Feel all these Curses, and Ten Thousand more, Dangerfield's Ghost to Jeffreys. Revenge / Revenge/ My injur'd Shade begins To haunt thy guilty Soul, and scourge thy Sins : For since to me thou ow'st the heaviest Score, Whose living Words tormented thee before, When dead, Fm come to plague thee yet once more. Don't start away, and think thy Brass to hide, But see the dismal Shape in which I dy'd ! My Body all deform'd with putrid Gore, Bleeding my Soul away at every pore; I 2 1x6 %^t H&tgmn Sl^artpcoloffp* Pusht faster on by Francis, less unkind ; My Body swoln, and bloated as thy Mind. This dangling Eye-ball rolls about in vain, Never to find his proper Seat again, The hollow Cell usurpt by Blood and Brain : The trembling Jury's Verdict ought to be Murder d at once, by Francis, and by Thee. The Groans of Orphans, and the pond'rous Guilt Of all the Blood that thou hast ever spilt ; Thy Country's Curse, the Rabble's Spite, and all Those Wishes sent thee since they long-misht Fall ; The Nobles just Revenge, so bravely bought, For all thy Ills thy Insolence has wrought : May these and more their utmost Force combine, Join all their Wrongs, and mix their Cries with mine. And see if Terror has not struck thee blind ; See here along, a ghastly Train behind ! Far, far from utmost WEST they crowd away, And hov'ring o'er fright back the sickly Day* Had the poor Wretches sinn y d as much as Thee, Thou should st not have forgot Humanity : Whoe'er in Blood can so much pleasure take ? Tho' an ill Judge would a good Hang-man make. Each hollows in thy Ears, Prepare I Prepare For what thou must, yet what thou canst not bear ! Each at thy Heart a bloody Dagger aims, Upward to Gibbets point, downward to endless Flames. MR. NOISE. iMONG those who suffered innocently for Lefs Plot, this poor young Gentleman was one, tho' omitted in due Place, who tho' he lost not his Life imme- diately by it, was yet put to such Extremities, as both injured his Reason, and ruined his Fortunes. He was born of a good Family not far from Reading, in Barkshirej and being a younger Son, was bound Apprentice to a Linen-Draper St£r* jpotee. 117 in London. In which Capacity he was a great Promoter of the Apprentices Addresses, intended to be presented to the King for Redress of Grievances, and further Prosecution of the Popish Plot. A Crime, which those concerned, could never pardon, and which was now lookt on, both by himself, and all his Friends, as the Cause of these his Troubles. Lee swore against him that he was concerned in this Plot, which he absolutely denying, tho' no other Witness came in against him, and he was never brought to a Trial, he underwent a long and severe Imprisonment, loaded with Irons, and kept from his Friends, so long till his Trade was ruined before he was set free, and he himself then rendered so unfit for Business, that he was forced entirely to leave it off, and betake himself to Travel: Where, never quite recovering himself, he in a little Time after fell sick and died. And here 'twill not be improper to remind my Readers, that about this Time Things running very high for Popery and Arbi- trary Power, the Consideration thereof was very afflicting to Mr. Noise: Yet notwithstanding all this, he was silent a long while and minded only the proper Business of his Calling, resolving not to concern himself with State- Affairs, as deeming them above his Sphere and Condition ; which Silence and Resolution he had still kept, notwithstanding the great and ineffable Evils he saw impending over us, (which were much the more apparent upon the Prorogations and Dissolutions of so many Parliaments in so dangerous and so critical a Juncture ;) but that casually reading one of the Weekly Intelligences, he happened therein to meet with something, Entituled, An Address from the Loyal Young Men Apprentices of the City of London to His Majesty : The Title (he thought) concerned him, as being a Loyal Appren- tice of the same City, and therefore he deliberately read it over. At first it seemed to bear a fair Aspect, as it was a Tender of Thanks to His Majesty for His most Gracious Declaration ; but considering that this Declaration contained in it, several severe Reflections on the Proceedings of the late Parlia- ments, terming them Arbitrary, illegal, and unwarrantable, Mr. Noise dreaded the Consequence of such Reflections, as believing that it stood not with Modesty, for Apprentices to charge the Great Senate of the Nation with Arbitrary, Illegal, and Un- n8 W$z WLt&mn ®$myvo\o$y+ warrantable Proceedings ; and resolved what in him lay, to Vindicate himself and fellow-Apprentices (which is thought to have been the Cause of all his Sufferings before related) and to satisfie the whole World, that the far greater Part of the Apprenties of London have too great a Veneration for Parlia- ments, (which under his Majesty are the Bulwarks of our Lives, Liberties, and Properties) for to be concerned in any Thing tending to Reproach, or reflect upon them ; he advis'd with several sober Persons about it, who did not disapprove of his Design, but Advice therein they would not give : Wherefore Mr. Noise thinking to Petition the Lord Mayor would be the most modest and proper Way to demonstrate a Dislike of, and Detes- tation to all such Actions, he caused the following Petition to be drawn up and Presented, viz. To the Right Honourable Lord Mayor of London, the Humble Address of many Thousand Loyal Apprentices of the same City, whose names are hereunto Subscribed, In all Humility Sheweth, That as we are justly sensible of our Happiness, in being born under the Enjoyment of the Protestant Religion, so Ex- cellent a Government, and so Gracious a King, to whose Service we shall ever be ready to sacrifice our Lives ; so have we continually applied our selves to discharge our Duties in our proper Callings, without presuming to intermeddle in Affairs beyond our Sphere or Concernment. But being fully Satisfied, both by his Majesty's frequent Pro- clamations, the unanimous Votes of several Parliaments, and the Notoriousness of Fact, that for divers Years past, there hath been, and still is a Devilish Plot carrying on by the Papists against the Sacred Life of our Soveraign, (whom God preserve) and to subvert the Protestant Religion, and the Government Established : In which horrid Practices the Conspirators have alway appeared most active and insolent during the Intervals of Parliaments ; and from thence, and the continuing Hopes of a Popish Successor, take Occasion with greater Confidence, to push on their fatal Designs. Q£r* j£ot0t* 119 Observing likewise, that among the many late Addresses, there hath been one promoted in the Names of some few of our Condition in this Honourable City, which now is represented as the Act and Sense of the Generality of Apprentices, although the far greater Part never joined therein, as fearing lest the same might seem of a Tendency dishonourable to Parliaments, whose Constitution we Reverence, and humbly apprehend their Coun- sels highly necessary in such a Juncture. Wherefore, though out of an awful Respect, we presume not to approach his Sacred Majesty, yet we cannot but think it our Duty, to declare to your Lordship (the Chief Magistrate under him of this honourable City) and to all the World, That we shall never be behind any of our Fellow- Apprentices in Demon- strations of Loyalty to his Sacred Majesty, even to the last Drop of our Blood, whenever his Majesty's Service shall require it, against any Traitors or Rebels whatsoever. And also to assure your Lordship, That as we do (and through God's Grace ever shall) abhor Popery, and all its bloody, traiterous Practices : So we do utterly disapprove and dislike any such Proceedings from private Persons, as tend to reproach Parliaments ; but do unani- mously, with one Heart, and with one Voice, express our Satis- faction in, and Thanks for the humble Petition and Address of your Lordship and the Common-Council presented to his Majesty in May last, and since approved of in Common-Hall, for the Assembling and sitting of a Parliament. That the God of Heaven may ever bless and preserve his Sacred Majesty, and your Lordship, and this great and honourable City ; and grant that your Successors, in this weighty Trust, may imitate your Lordship's Piety and Zeal, for the Protestant Religion, and his Majesty's Service, shall ever be the daily Prayers of us his Majesty's humble, faithful, loyal and obedient Subjects. Printed for Thomas Goodwill, An. 1681. This Name is composed of Fourteen Letters, taken out of the Names of the Chief Managers. This Address was signed by about Thirty Thousand Hands ; and when those Twenty Persons that presented it had subscribed their Names to it, they sent Mr. Noise and Mr. Dunton (two of the said Presenters) to Mr. Firmin, to know when they might have 120 W$z aaugtertt S^art^rolog:?* Leave to present it to my Lord Mayor, which being granted in a few Days the Twenty Presenters went in a Body together to Mr. Firmin, who introduced 'em to my Lord. To whom Mr. Bur ley made a brief Speech as follows. May it Please your Lordship. The Occasion of giving your Lordship this Trouble is humbly to lay at your Lordship's Feet, an Address to your Lordship^ subscribed by many Thousand Loyal Apprentices of this City. We do humbly acknowledge to your Lordship, that the Pre- sumption we may seem guilty of in this Matter, (considering our present Stations) requires a far greater Apology than we are able to make. But the principal Reasons that incited us, thus to address ourselves to your Lordship, are, To demonstrate our Loyalty to his Sacred Majesty. Our Zeal for the Protestant Religion. And the Veneration and Esteem we have, and ought to have or Parliaments. Neither indeed, my Lord, could we think these sufficient Motives to stir us up to this publick Application, (which better becomes graver Heads than ours) had not some few of our Fellow- Apprentices lately presented his Majesty with an Ad- dress (which seemed to be a Gratulation for the Dissolution of the Two last Parliaments) which they now report to have been the Act of the Majority of Apprentices of this honourable City ; although the far greater Part (as may by the Subscriptions of this Address appear to your Lordship) were never concerned therein. And although (by Reason of our present Condition) we think it an unpardonable Crime to approach his Sacred Majesty about Matters relating to the State ; yet we deem it our bounden Duty to declare to your Lordship and the whole World, That we utterly disclaim any proceedings (especially from Persons in our own Condition) that may seem to reflect upon Parliaments, the greatest Senate of the Nation. And that the Generality of Apprentices of this City have a Venerable Esteem for Parliaments ; which may the better appear to your Lordship upon reading the Address it self. And I dare be bold to affirm to your Lordship, (by the Infor- 9£r* jpo&e* 121 mation I have had from those who were employed to take Sub- scriptions to this Address,) That there is not one Subscriber to it, who is either Journey-man, Tapster, Hostler, Water-man, or the like ; but all Persons of our own Rank and Condition. Which Address, in the name of all the Subscribers thereunto, I humbly offer to your Lordship, and beg your Lordship's favour- able Reception of it. Then his Lordship commanded the Address to be read, which being ready, Mr. Bur ley proceeded thus. I have one Thing more to say, my Lord, I understand that there is a common Notion about Town, that this Address hath been carried on by Faction, and that none but Dissenters have been concerned in it. I can assure your Lordship of the con- trary : For that I know many of the Subscribers who are of the Church of England; of which Church I boast my self an unworthy Member. Then his Lordship was pleased to express himself to this Effect. Gentlemen, This is a Surprize to me ; and therefore I cannot tell what to say to it. But for as much as I have heard your Address read, and at first reading can find nothing in it, but what becomes Loyal and Obedient Subjects, I do accept of it. I only desire the Names of you that are the Presenters. Then we told him, that our Names were those, which were next to the Address it self at some Distance from the rest of the Subscribers. Then he ordered them all to be called over, and so we answered to our Names. And then his Lordship desired he might have an Account of our Abodes, which we also gave him. Then his Lordship advised us to go home, and give Evidence of our Loyalty by our peaceable Demeanour, and Conformity to the Laws of the Land ; and to lay the Foundation of our future Happiness, by being dutiful to our Masters, and diligent in our Business, that so in Time we might become good Citizens. So they returned again in five Coaches, to RusselVs^ and supped there all together, and so every one went home. The Twenty Presenters of this Address were, Mr. Burleyy i22 %ty Wltgttvn S^art^roloff^ Mr. A h, Mr. Stephens, Mr. Mead, Mr. B th, Mr. Evans, Mr. Batty, Mr. P le, Mr. Donton, Mr. Afaz'j*, (one of the Persons who first set this Design afoot) Mr. C //, Mr. S s, Mr. S y, Mr. Heming, Mr. B w, Mr. Pointell, Mr. S th, Mr. Bourn, Mr. Malthus, Mr. R ts. A Letter sent August 19. 1681. thus subscribed, To the truly Loyal and Protestant Apprentices of London, that were the Principal Managers of the late Address to my Lord Mayor. Go on, Heroick Souls, and faithful be Unto your God, your King, your Liberty. Let your unbyast Actions give the Lie To such as scandalize your Loyalty. To Casar render what's to Ccesar due : Earth merits, Heaven expects no more from you. Those Rights defend which your Brave Sires sent down, Inviolable as the Throne or Crown. Tell supple Parasites, and treacherous Knaves, You're humble Subjects, not degenerate Slaves. Bow low, but scorn to creep, (for that's as well) Nor for a Mess of Broth your Birth-rights sell. Pass by th' Affronts that Hell and Rome can send ; Comfort your selves, when 'tis at worst 'twill mend. But when the Church is shook by Potent Foes, For her Defence your Bodies interpose. Of Popish Mercy never run the Risque : A crowned Serpent grows a Basilisk. Vindicate then the Gospel and the Laws ; The Cause is Heaven's, Heaven will espouse the Cause. Undauntedly prop up your Churches Walls, And joy to fall beneath it if it falls. To perish thus, who would not be content, When mouldring Temples are his Monument ? THE INTRODUCTION OF THE Western TRANSACTIONS, AND ?■■ p eneral Observations upon hem Jh: AM sensible 'tis a very invidious Thing to defend any Action which has had the Public Stream and Cry long against it ; with which even Men of Sense, and sometimes Religion too, tho' Pride or Shame perhaps seldom lets 'em own the very Truth on't, are commonly hurried away as well as others. But this is, 'tis hoped, for the general, an Age of Confession and Ingenuity ; and since so many of the greatest Men upon Earth have gone before, in acknowledging some Notions too far strained, and others mistaken, 'twill be no real Disgrace, but an Honour to follow them, when so much in the right. And if once Principles and Notions are changed, or limited, we shall necessarily have other Thoughts of Things and Persons than we had before ; and 124 ^t WLtmvn %van&attion$. that Action was called Rebellion, and those Men we thought Rebels ', while we had a wrong slavish Notion of Obedience ; when once that's regulated, and we believe with all the World, and all Ages and Nations, That we are to obey only the lawful Commands of Superiors, and submit only to such unjust ones, as will not much damage the Commonwealth; but resist and defend ourselves, when all we have dear, our Religion, Liberty and Lives, are visibly and undeniably attackt and invaded, either without all Form of Law, or what's worse, the wrested Pretence of it. Then we think truly, that such Men are so far from being Rebels, that they are the worthy true Defenders of their Faith and Country: And such an Action so far from Rebellion, that 'tis highly meritorious and praise-worthy. Most Men being now satisfied in these Points, unless those whom insuperable Interest or Prejudice have poisoned and rooted incorrigibly in the contrary Belief. And the Truth and Reason- ableness of them having been undeniably proved by many worthy Persons from the Law of Nations, the Ends of all Government, and the constitution of our Kingdom, and the Practice of former Ages, both Popish and Protestant : All the Question now must be about Matter of Fact, Whether Things were then brought to that Extremity that 'twould probably be too late to make any Defence for Religion and Property, if ''twere not then made; and whether or no the Fundamental Contract were then actually violated? This is plain, that the Protestant Religion, and all our Liber- ties were then most eminently in Danger, publick Leagues being long before made between his Britannick Majesty and the King of France for their Extirpation : That he who had been voted in Parliament the main Head of the Popish Cause, was now grown the Head of the Kingdom ; or indeed the Popish Deputy here, as he is since the King of Frances in our Neighbouring Island ; that for being reconciled to Rome, he was actually a Traitor ; and besides, of a Religion whose Oaths could not be depended upon, as we were then, and long before told, and have since sufficiently felt and experienced. That on this Account, he hardly could keep his Contract, as 'twas plain he actually did not, publickly and notoriously violating those Laws he swore to maintain, both before and after he had done it, by going to Mass ^ntroDuctton. 125 himself, setting up Mass-houses, and encouraging Popery. As for many Grievances and Oppressions, he was then as really guilty of 'em as ever after, tho' not in such large, and frequent, and various Instances ; some of 'em are those very same which the Parliament inserted among the Proofs and Reasons of the Abdication, particularly the issuing out Quo Warrantors for Cities and Corporations ; the great Cause and Counsellor of which no Doubt he was, even before he actually, I mean publickly, reigned. In a Word, the securing the Protestant Interest in all Europe, that, and their own Liberties in England, was the main cause why many, and most engaged in this Design. If these were in no Danger, and not violated, they we Rebels : If the Safety of 'em could be expected any other Way but by the Sword, they were no better. Whether Things were in that Condition, or no, at that Time, God and the World must be Judges. If it were so, they were hot Rebels : If the Case was not so bad, and the Mystery of Iniquity not so far revealed, as it has been since, yet preventive Physick is necessary, especially when Death is un- avoidable without it. If a prudent Man is to meet Mischief rushing upon him, and not stay fort till it overwhelms him, and take the same Course against a certain Consequence, as an actual Evil, why then, I think 'twill be very hard to hang People in one World, and damn 'em in another, for having as little a Fore- sight, and great a Faith as their Neighbours. Others there were who embarkt in that Action, because they really thought, how much mistaken soever they might be, that the Duke of Monmouth was the King's Legitimate Son; which such as had a personal Love for him might more easily believe. Now, although many, who engaged on the former Account only, did not believe this, nor know anything of his Intention of being proclaimed King, nor approved of it when 'twas done ; and tho' had he been able to make out his Title, or let his Pretensions alone, he had not wanted in all Likelihood a sufficient Assistance from the Nobility and Gentry, none of whom for those Reasons coming in to him ; yet on the other Side, 'tis hardly doubted that these Men, who thought he had a Right, were really obliged to follow the Dictates of their Conscience, tho' mistaken, and do whatever lay in their Power, to the utmost Venture of their 126 Cfje WlzZUkxi ^rangacttong* Lives, to fix him on his Father's Throne, to which they verily believed he had a proper Right and Title. And these Men too, acting on the same Reasons with the forementioned, for Deliver- ance of their Country, as well as Defence of him whom they thought their King ; the earnest Zeal, and Concern, and Love, which most of 'em manifested for the Protestant Religion, being besides so conspicuous in their Lives and Deaths, I know not how they can, without Impudence, be branded with the infamous Name of Rebels j nor think 'twill be any Arrogance to honour 'em with the just and dear-bought Title of Martyrs. One Thing there is very observable in most, if not all of those who laid down their Lives in this Cause, both in England and Scotland, that, besides that extraordinary Divine Courage and Chearfulness with which they died, they had Expressions plainly boding that great Deliverance which Providence has since that miraculously accomplished for these Kingdoms. 'Twould be endless to give almost all the innumerable Instances of it : Mr. Nelthorp says [God had in his wonderful Provi- dence made him and others Instruments, not only in what was already fallen out, but he believed, for hastening some other great Work, he had yet to do in these Kingdoms^ Mrs. Gaunt says, [God's Cause shall revive, and he'd plead it at another Rate than yet he had done, against all its malicious Opposers.] And speaks yet more strangely of those then upper- most, and likely to be so, [ That thd they were seemingly fixed, and using their Power and Violence against those they had now got tinder 'em, yet unless they could secure Jesus Christ, and all his Holy Angels, they should never do their Business, but Vengeance would be upon 'em e'er they were aware.] Captain Ansley, whose Speech is as pretty and neat a Thing, as close, and Christian, and couragious, as perhaps any that ever was made by Man in his Condition, after he had said [He did not repent what he had done, but if he had a thousand Lives would have engaged 'em all in the same Cause J] adds just after, [Though it has pleased the wise God, for Reasons best know7i to himself, now to blast our Designs, yet he will deliver his People by Ways we know not, nor think of] Ru?nbold said just the same. Mr. Hewling says, [/ question not, but in his own Time, God will raise up other Instruments to carry on the 3ntP0Ductfoiu 127 same Cause they died for, for his own Glory."] Mr. Lark [That he was confident God would revenge their Bloods \] Now, it will be very harsh to say, all these, and several more, to the same Purpose, were nothing but Enthusiasm, since spoken by Persons of all Sexes and Ages in twenty different Places, in the most calm and serene Tempers, and the Persons not wild or fancyful ; and their Words miraculously made good by the Event, which shews God honoured 'em with being Prophets as well as Martyrs. To proceed to the Persons who suffered in this Cause here, and in the West, and other Places, chiefly under Jeffrey s insulting Cruelty. His dealing with 'em is not to be parallell'd by any thing but the new French Dragoons, or the old Cut-throats and Lord Chief Justices of the poor Albigenses or Waldenses at Merindol and Cutrices. Had the Great Turk sent his Ja- nisaries, or the Tartar his # Armies among 'em, they'd 'scaped better. Humanity could not offend so far to deserve such Punishment as he inflicted. A certain barbarous Joy and Pleasure grinned from his Brutal Soul through his Bloody Eyes, whenever he was sentencing any of the poor Souls to Death and Torment ; so much worse than Nero, as when that Monster wisht he had never learnt to write, because forced to set his Name to Warrants for Execution of Malefactors. Jeffreys would have been glad if every Letter he writ had been such a Warrant, and every Word a Sentence of Death. He observed neither Humanity to the Dead, nor Civility to the Living. He made all the West an Aceldama ; some Places quite depopu- lated, and nothing to be seen in 'em but forsaken Walls, un- lucky Gibbets, and Ghostly Carcases. The Trees were loaden, almost as thick with Quarters as Leaves. The Houses and Steeples covered as close with Heads, as at other Times frequently in that Country with Crows and Ravens. Nothing could be liker Hell than all those Parts, nothing so like the Devil as he. Caldrons hizzing, Carkases boyling, Pitch and Tar sparkling and glowing, Blood and Limbs boyling, and tearing, and mangling, and he the great Director of all ; and in a Word, discharging his Place who sent him, the best deserving to be the late King's Chief Justice there, and Chancellor after, of any Man that breathed since Cain or Judas. i28 Wbt Witmvn Ctangactfong* Some of the more Principal Persons who fell under his bar- barous Sentences, 'tis thought worth the while to treat distinctly and particularly of, throwing the rest together after 'em, and only reprinting the former Account, if any are left out, it being necessary to hasten, to prevent Shams. If the Book be accepted, and come to another Edition, they shall be inserted ; and if any Faults or Mistakes found, acknowledged and regulated. And the first whom we shall make especial Remarks on, are THE HEWLINGS. F any one would see true Pure Popish Mercy, let 'em look on these Two Gentlemen, the onely Sons of their Vertuous and Sorrowful Parents ; the Comforts, Props, and Hopes of their Name and Family, carefully educated, vertuously disposed both of them ; after all repeated Applications, if but for one of their Lives, barbarously Executed. A particular care was taken by their Father in their Education, forming their Minds by his own Example, and constant Instructions and Prayers, as well as other Pains of Ingenious Masters, to the strictest Rules of Piety and Vertue. Nor was their Pious and very Tender Mother less careful in that Particular. The Elder, Mr. Benjamin Hewling^ had Tutors in the Mathe- maticks y and other Parts of Philosophy ; a Course of which he went through successfully enough, and so as to render him as compleat in his Mind, as Nature had formed his Body : After which he went to Holland, as his Brother, Mr. William Hewling, from whence this last returned with the Duke : Both of 'em had Commands in the Army ; the Elder had a Troop of Horse, the Younger was a Lieutenant of Foot, and discharged their Places with much more Conduct and Bravery than could be expected from such Young Soldiers, being entirely satisfied in the Cause they fought for, since 'twas no less than the Interest of all that was dear to 'em in this World or t'other. The Eldest had par- ticularly signalized himself in several Skirmishes, and was sent with a Detachment of his own Troop, and Two more, to Myn- head in Somersetshire to bring Cannon to the Army, at the very Instant the Duke engaged the King's Forces at Fatal Sedgmorej and came not up till after the Field was entirely lost ; to whose Absence, with so considerable a Party of the Duke's Horse, and the most resolved Men of all he had, the Loss of the Day was principally owing. Finding all Things in Disorder, and the Rout beyond recovering, he was forced to disperse his Troops, every one shifting as they could for themselves. He and his Brother kept together, where, what befell 'em after, their Friends have given an exact Account, which is here following inserted. An Account of the Behaviour of Mr. William and Benjamin Hewling, before and at their Execution ; with several Letters to divers of their Relations. The Gracious dealings of God, manifested to some in Dying Hours, have been of great Advantage to those living that heard the same, giving them an Occasion thereby to reflect on their own State, and to look after the Things of their Peace, before they be hid from their Eyes ; as also a great Encouragement to strengthen the Faith of those that have experienced the Grace of God to them. To that End it is thought necessary, by Parents especially, to preserve to their Children that Remain, those blessed Expe- riences that such have had, which God hath taken to himself. Here therefore is presented a true Account of the Admirable Appearances of God towards two Young Men ; Mr. Benjamin Hewling, who died when he was about 22 Years of Age, and Mr. William Hewling, who died before he arrived to 20 Years : They engaged with the Duke of Monmouth, as their own words were, for the English Liberties, and the Protestant Religion, and for which Mr. William Hewling was Executed at Lyme the 1 2th of September ; 1685. and Mr. Benjamin Hewling at Taun- ton, the 30th of the same Month ; and however severe Men were to them, yet the blessed Dispensation of God towards them was such, as hath made good his Word, that out of the Mouths of Babes he hath ordained Strength, that he may still the Enemy and the Avenger. Then, Reader, would you see Earthly Angels, (Men that are a little too low for Heaven, and much too K 130 %l)t Wimtvn ^rangacttontf- high for Earth) would you see poor frail Creatures trampling this World under their Feet, and with an holy, serene Counten- ance Smiling at the Threats of Tyrants, who are the Terrors of the Mighty in the Land of the Living ? Would you see shackled Prisoners behave themselves like Judges, and Judges stand like Prisoners before them ? Would you see some of the fare Exploits of faith in its highest Elevation, immediately before it be swallowed up in the Beatifical Vision ? To conclude, would you see the Heavenly Jerusalem pourtrayted on Earth ? Would you hear the melodious Voices of ascending Saints in a ravishing Comfort ready to join with the Heavenly Chorus in their delight- ful Hallelujah's ? Then draw near, come and see ! If thou be a Man of an Heavenly Spirit, here is pleasant and suitable Entertainment for thee ; and after thou has conversed a while with these Excellent Spirits, it may be thou wilt judge as I do, That dead Saints are sweeter Companions (in some Respects) for thee to converse with, than those that are living : And when thou shalt see the magnificent Acts of their Faith, their invin- cible Patience, their flaming Love to Christ, their strange Con- tempt and Undervaluings of the World, their Plainness and Simplicity in the Profession of the Gospel, their fervent and brotherly love to each other, their ravishing Prospect (as it were on the Top of Mount Pisgah) of the Heavenly Canaan, their Swan-like Songs and Dying-Speeches. And, Reader, you know the first Lispings of little Children, and last farewels of Dying Saints are always most sweet and chaining: Those Fore-tastes of the Rivers of Pleasure, the transporting Glimpses they had of the Crown of Glory ; I say, when you see and read these Exemplary Truths, wonder not that the Pious Hew lings longed so vehemently to be in a better World, though they were to pass through a Thousand Deaths, or the Fiery Trial to it. [But to come to our intended Matter.] After the dispersing of the Duke's Army, they fled and put to Sea, but were driven back again, and with the Hazard of their Lives got on Shoar, (over dangerous Rocks) where they saw the Country filled with Soldiers, and they being unwilling to fall into the Hands of the Rabble, and no Way of Defence or Escape remaining to them, they surrendred themselves Prisoners to a Gentleman, whose House was near the Place they landed at, The Surrender of the Hewmngs P 130 W$z t&rtDlmfl#. 131 and were from thence sent to Exeter Goal, the 1 2th of July, where remaining some Time, their Behaviour was such, that (being visited by many) caus'd great Respect towards em', even of those that were Enemies to the Cause they engaged in ; and being on the 27th of July put on Board the Swan Frigate, in Order to their bringing up to London, their Carriage was such, as obtained great Kindness from the Commander, and all other Officers in the Ship ; and being brought into the River, Captain Richardson came and took them into his Custody, and carried them to Newgate, putting great Irons about them, and put them apart from each other, without giving Liberty for the nearest Relation to see them, notwithstanding all Endeavours and Entreaties used to obtain it, tho' in the Presence of a Keeper ; which though it did greatly increase the Grief of Relations, God, who wisely orders all Things for Good to those he intends Grace and Mercy to^ made this very Restraint, and hard Usage a blessed Advantage to their Souls, as may appear by their own Words, when after great Importunity and Charge, some of their near Relations had Leave to speak a few Words to them before the Keeper, to which they replied, They were contented -with the Will of God whatever it should be. Having been in Newgate three Weeks, there was Order given to carry them down into the West, in Order to their Trial ; which being told them, they answered, They were glad of it j and that Morning they went out of Newgate, several that beheld them, seeing them so chear- ful, said, Surely they had received their Pardon, else they coitld never carry it with that Courage and Chearfulness. Although this must be observed, that from first to last, whatever Hopes they received from friends, they still thought the contrary, never being much affected with the Hopes of it, nor cast down, nor the least discouraged at the worst that Man could do. In their Journey to Dorchester, the Keepers that went with them have given this Account of them, That their Carriage was so grave, serious, and Christian, that made them admire to see and hear what they did from such Young Men, A near Relation that went into the West to see the Issue of Things, and to perform whatever should be necessary for them, gives the following Account : At Salisbury, the 30th of August, I had the first Opportunity K 2 i32 %$t Wlt&ttvn Crart0attton0. of Converse with them : I found them in a very Excellent Com- posure of Mind, declaring their Experience of the Grace and Goodness of God to them in all their Sufferings, in supporting and strengthning, and providing for them, turning the Hearts of all in whose Hands they had been both at Exon, and on Ship- board, to shew Pity and Favour to them ; although since they came to Newgate they were hardly used, and now in their Journey loaded with heavy Irons, and more inhumanely dealt with. They with great Chearfulness professed, That they were better, and i?i a more happy Condition than ever in their Lives, from the Sense they had of the pardoning Love of God in Jesus Christ to their Souls, wholly referring the?nselves to their wise and gracious God to chuse for them Life or Death j expressing themselves thus : Any thing what pleases God, what he sees best, so be it : We know he is able to deliver, but if not, blessed be his Name, Death is not terrible 7iow, but desirable. Mr. Benjamin Hewling particularly added, As for the World, there is nothing in it to make it worth while to live, except we may be serviceable to God therein. And afterward said, Oh 7 God is a strong Refuge, I have found him so indeed. The next Opportunity Fhad was at Dorchester, where they both were carried, there remaining together four Days : By Reason of their strait Confinement our Converse was much interrupted ; but this appeared, that they had still the same Presence and Sup- port from God, no way discouraged at the Approach of their Trial, nor of the Event of it, whatever it should be. The 6th of September Mr. Benjamin Hewling was ordered to TauntonXo be tried there : Taking my Leave of him, he said, Oh ! Blessed be God for Afflictions j I have found such happy Effects, that I would not have been without them for all this World. I remained still at Dorchester to wait the Issue of Mr. William Hewling, to whom, after Trial, I had free Access, whose Dis- course was much filled with Admirings of the Grace of God in Christ, that had been manifested towards him, in calling him out of his natural State. He said, God by his holy Spirit did sud- denly seize upon his Heart, when he thought not of it in his retired Abode in Holland, as it were secretly whispering in his Heart, Seek ye my Face, enabling him to a?iswer his Call, and C&e K?etolfnff& 133 to reflect upon his own Soul, shewing him the Evil of Sin, and Necessity of Christ, from that Time carrying him on, to a sensible Adherence to Christ for Justification and Eternal Life. He said, Hence he found a Spring of Joy and Sweetness beyond the Comforts of the whole Earth. He further said, He could not but ad?nire the wonderful Goodness of God, in so preparing him, for what he was bringing him to, which then he thought not ofj giving hi7n Hope of Eternal Life, before he called him to look Death in the Face, so that he did chearfully resign his Life to God before he came, having sought his Guidance in it; and that both then, and now the Cause did appear to him very Glorious, notwithstanding all he had suffered in it,, or what he further might. Although for our Sins God hath with held these good Things fro7n us. But he said, God had carried on his Blessed Work on his Soul, in and by all his Sufferings ; and whatever the Will of God were, Life or Death, he knew it would be best for him. After he had received his Sentence, when he returned to Prison, he said, Methinks L find my spiritual Comforts inc7 eas- ing, ever since my Sentence. There is no Co7idemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus, ifs God that justifies, whom shall condemn f When I came to him the next Morning, (when he had received News that he must die the next Day, and in Order to it was to be carried to Lyme that Day) I found him in a more excellent rais'd Spiritual Frame than before : He said, He was satisfied God had chosen best for him : he knows what the Temptations of Life might have been ; I might have lived and forgotten God, but now I am going where I shall sin no more. ! it's a Blessed Thing to be free from Sin, and to be with Christ. Oh ! the Riches of the Love of Christ to Sinners. Oh ! how great were the Sufferings of Christ for me beyond all 1 can undergo ? How great is that Glory to which I am going ? It will soon swallow up all our Sorrow here. When he was at Dinner, just before his going to Lyme, he dropt many abrupt Expressions of his inward Joy, such as these : Oh ! the Grace of God, the Love of Christ; Oh ! that blessed Supper of the La7nb, to be for ever with the Lord ! He further said, When I went to Holland, you k7iew not what i3l %%t H&t&ttvn '(Xrartgf actions Snares, Sins and Miseries I might fall into, or whether ever we should meet again :. But now you know whither I am going, and that we shall certainly have a most joyful Meeting. He said, Pray give my particular Recommendations to all my Friends, with acknowledgments for all their kindness. I advise them all to make sure of an Interest in Christ, for He is the only comfort when we come to die. One of the Prisoners seemed to be troubled at the Manner of the Death they were to die ; to whom he replied/ / bless God I am reconciled to it all. Just as he was going to Lyme, he writ these few Lines to a Friend, being hardly suffered to stay so long. / am going to launch into Eternity, and I hope and trust into the A r 171 of my Blessed Redeemer, to whom I commit you. and all my dear Relations; my Duty to my dear Mother, and Love to all my Sisters, and the rest of my Friends. William Hewling. As they passed through the Town of Dorchester to Lyme, Multitudes of People beheld them, with great Lamentations, admiring at his Deportment at his parting with his Sister. As they passed upon the Road between Lyme and Dorchester, his Discourse was exceeding Spiritual, (as those declared who were present) taking Occasion from every Thing to speak of the Glory they were going to. Looking out on the country as he passed, he said, This is a Glorious Creation, but what then is the Paradice of God to which we are going? 3 Tis but a few Hours, and we shall be there, and for ever with the Lord. At Lyme, just before they went to die, reading John 14. 18. He said to one of his Fellow- sufferers, Here is a sweet Promise for us, I will not leave you comfortless, I will come [unto you. Christ will be with us to the last. One taking Leave of him, he said, Farewel till we meet in Heaven ; presently I shall be with Christ : Oh / / would not Change conditions with any in this world ; I would not stay behind for ten thousand worlds. To another that asked him how he did now ? He said, Very well he blessed God. And farther asking him, if he could look Death in the Face with Comfort now it approach'd so near ? W$z ^etolinp. 135 He said, Yes, I bless God I can with great Comfort; God has made this a good Night to me, my Comforts are much increased since I left Dorchester : Then taking Leave of him, said, Fare- wel, I shall see you no more. To which he replied, How 1 See me no 7nore? Yes, I hope to meet you in Glory. To another that was by him to the last, he said, Pray remember my dear Love to my Brother and Sister, and tell them, I desire they would comfort themselves that I a7n gone to Christ, a7id we shall quickly meet in the Glorious Mount Si on above. Afterwards he prayed for about three Quarters of an Hour with the greatest Fervency, exceedingly blessing God for Jesus Christ, adoring the Riches of his Grace in him, in all the Glorious Fruits of it towards him, praying for the Peace of the Church of God, and of these Nations in particular, all with such eminent Assistance of the Spirit of God, as convinced, astonished, and melted into Pity the Hearts of all present, even the most malicious Adversaries, forcing Tears and Expressions from them ; some saying, They knew not what would become of them after Death ; but it was evident he was going to great Happiness. When he was just going out of the World, with a joyful Countenance, he said, Oh ! now my Joy and Co7nfort is, that I have a Christ to go to, and so sweetly resigned his Spirit to Christ, the 12th of Septe77iber, 1685. An Officer who had shewed so malicious a Spirit as to call the Prisoners Devils, when he was guarding them down, was now so convinced, that he after told a Person of Quality, That he was never so affected, as by his chearful Carriage and fervent Prayer, such, as he believed, was never heard, especially from one so Young ; and said, I believe, had the Lord Chief Justice been there, he would not have let him die. The Sheriff having given his Body to be buried, although it was brought from the Place of Execution without any Notice given, yet very many of the Town, to the Number of about 200, came to accompany him ; and several Young Women of the best of the Town, laid him in his Grave in Ly 771c- Church- Yard, the 13th of Septe77iber, 1685. After which his Sister wrote the following Letter to her Mother : 136 %l)t fattegtent ^rangacttottsL Although I have nothing to acquaint my Dear Mother withall, but what is most afflictive to Sense, both as to the Determination of God's Will, and as to my present Apprehen- sion concering my Brother Benjamin, yet remaining; yet there is such abundant Consolation mixt in both, that I only wanted an Opportunity to pay this Duty ; God having wrought so Glorious a Work on both their Souls, revealing Christ in them, that Death is become their Friend. My Brother William having already with the greatest Joy declared to those that were with him to the last, that he would not change Conditions with any that were to remain in this World, and he desired that his Relations would comfort themselves, that he is gone to Christ. My Brother Benjamin expects not long to continue in this World, and is exceeding willing to leave it when God shall call, being fully satisfied that God will chuse that which is best for him and us all ; by these Things God doth greatly support me ; and I hope you also, my Dear Mother, which was and is my Brother's great Desire ; there is still Room for Prayer for one ; and God having so answered, though not in kind, we have Encouragement still to wait on him. Honoured Mother, Your Dutiful Daughter, Hannah Hewling. When I came to Taunton, to Mr. Benjamin Hewling, he had received the News of his Brother's being gone to die with so much Comfort and Joy, and afterwards of the continued Goodness of God increasing it to the End. He exprest to this Effect, We have no Cause to fear Death, if the Presence of God be with us ; there is no Evil in it, the Sting being taken away ; it's nothing but our Ignorance of the Glory that the Saints pass into by Death, which makes it appear dark for our selves or Relations ; if in Christ, what is this World that we should desire an Abode in it ? It's all vain and unsatisfying, full of Sin and Misery : Intimating also his own chearful Expectations soon to follow, discovering then, and all along great Seriousness, and Sense of Spiritual and Eternal Things, complaining of nothing in his present Circumstances, but Want of a Place of Retire- ment to converse more uninterruptedly with God and his own Wbt ^ttoltnggf* 137 Soul, saying, That his lonely Time in Newgate was the sweetest in his whole Life. He said, God having some Time before struck his Heart (when He thought of the Hazard of his Life) to some serious Sense of his past Life, and the great Consequences of Death and Eternity, shewing him, that they were the only happy Persons that had secured their Eternal States : The folly and Madness of the Ways of Sin, and his own Thraldom therein, with his utter Inability to deliver himself ; also the Necessity of Christ for Salvation : He said it was not without Terror and Amazement for some Time, the Sight of unpardoned Sin, with Eternity before him. But God wonderfully opened to him the Riches of his Free Grace in Christ Jesus for poor Sinners to flee to, enabling to look alone to a Crucified Christ for Salvation : He said this blessed Work was in some Measure carried on upon his Soul, under all his Business and Hurries in the Army ; but never sprung forth so fully and sweetly till his close Confine- ment in Newgate. There he saw Christ and all Spiritual Objects more clearly, and embraced them more strongly ; there he experienced the Blessedness of a reconciled State, the Excellency of the Ways of Holiness, the Delightfulness of Communion with God, which remained with very deep and apparent Impressions on his Soul, which he frequently expressed with Admiration of the Grace of God towards him. He said, Perhaps my Friends may think this Summer the saddest Time of my Life ; but I bless God it hath been the sweetest and most happy of it all ; nay, there is nothing else worth the Name of Happiness. I have in vain sought Satisfaction from the Things of this World, but I never found it ; but now I have found Rest for my Soul in God alone. O how great is our Blindness by Nature, till God open our Eyes, that we can see no Excellency in Spiritual Things, but spend our precious Time in pursuing Shadows, and are deaf to all the Invitations of Grace, and Glorious Offers of the Gospel! How just is God in depriving us of that we so much slighted and abused ! Oh ! his infinite Patience and Goodness, that after all he should yet sanctifie any Methods to bring a poor Sinner to himself : Oh ! Electing Love, Distinguishing Grace ! What great Cause have I to admire and adore it ! He said, What an amazing consideration is the suffering of 138 %l)t Wlz&tzm ^ranssacttong* Christ for Sin, to bring us to God j his suffering from wicked ?nen was exceeding great; but alas, what was that to the Dolours of his Soul, under the infinite Wrath of God f This Mystery of Grace and Love is enough to swallow up our Thoughts to all Eternity. As to his own Death, he would often say, He saw no Reason to expect any other; I know God is infinitely able to deliver ; and I am sure will do it, if it be for his Glory, and my Good; in which, I. bless God, I am fully satisfied; ifs all my Desire that he would chuse for me, and then I ai?i sure it will be best, what ever it be; for truly, unless God have some Work for me to do in the World for his Service and Glory, I see nothing else to make Life desirable : In the present State of Affairs, there is nothing to cast our Eyes up07i, but Sin, Sorrow, and Misery : And truly, were Things never so ?nuch according to our Desires, ifs but the World still, which will never be a Resting-place. Heaven is the only State of Rest and Happi- ness ; there we shall be perfectly free from Sin and Temptation, and enjoy God without Interruption for ever. Speaking of the Disappointment of their Expectations in the Work they had undertaken, he said with Reference to the Glory of God, the Prosperity of the Gospel, and the Delivery of the People of God, We have great Cause to lament it ; but for that outward Prosperity that would have accompanied it, it's but of small Moment in it self; as it could not satisfie,so neither could it be abiding ; for at longest, Death would have put an End to it all : Also adding, Nay, perhaps we might have been so foolish, as to have been taken with that Part of it, with the Neglect of our eternal Concerns ; and then, I am sure, our present Circum- stances are incomparably better. He frequently expressed great Concern for the Glory of God, and Affection to his People, saying, If my Death may advance God's Glory, and hasten the Deliverance of his People, it is enough ; saying, It was a great Comfort to him, to think of so great a Priviledge as an Interest in all their Prayers. In his Converse particularly valuing and delighting in those Persons, where He saw most Holiness shining ; also great Pity to the Souls of others, saying, That the Remembrance of our former Vanity may well cause Compassion to others in that %$z ^rtDlmffg. 139 State. And in his Converse prompting others to Seriousness, telling them, Death and Eternity are such weighty Concerns, that they deserve the utmost Intention of our Minds ; for the Way to receive Death chearfully, is to prepare for it seriously ; and if God should please to spare our Lives, surely we have the same Reason to be serious, and spend our remaining Days in his Fear and Service. He also took great Care that the Worship of God, which they were in a Capacity of maintaining there, might be duly per- formed ; as Reading, Praying, and Singing of Psalms, in which he evidently took great Delight. For those three or four Days before their Deaths, when there was a general Report that no more should die ; he said, / don't k7iow what God hath done beyond our Expectations ; if he doth prolong my Life, I am sure it is all his own, and by his Grace I will wholy devote it to him. But the 29th of Septe7nber, about Ten or Eleven at Night, we found the Deceitfulness of this Report, they being then told they must die the next Morning, which was very unexpected, as to the Suddenness of it ; but herein God glorified his Power, Grace, and Faithfulness, in giving suitable Support and Comfort by his blessed Presence, which appeared upon my coming to him at that Time, finding him greatly composed : he said, Though men design to surprise, God doth and will perform his Word, to be a very present Help in Trouble. The next Morning when I saw him again, his Chearfulness and Comfort were much increased, waiting for the Sheriff with the greatest Sweetness and Serenity of Mind ; saying, Now the will of God is detennined, to whom I have referred it, and he hath chosen most certainly that which is best. Afterward with a smiling Countenance he discoursed of the Glory of Heaven, remarking with much Delight, the third, fourth, and fifth Verses of the 2 2d of the Revelations, And there shall be no more Curse j but the Throne of God, and of the Lamb, shall be in it, and his Servants shall serve him, and they shall see his Face, and his Name shall be in their Foreheads, and there shall be no Night there, and they shall need no Ca?idle nor Light of the Sun, and they shall reign for ever and ever. Then he said, Oh, what a happy State is this / Shall we be loth 140 %%t aaie0tern ^rangactfonsf* to go to enjoy this / Then he desired to be read to him, 2 Cor. 5. For we know that if our earthly House of this Tabernacle were dissolved, we have a building of God, a House not made with Hands, eternal in the Heavens; to the tenth or eleventh Verses. In all, his Comforts still increasing, expressing his sweet Hopes and good Assurance of his Interest in this glorious Inheritance, and being now going to the Possession of it, seeing so much of this happy Change, that he said, Death was more desirable than Life ; he had rather die than live any longer here. As to the Manner of his Death, he said, When I have considered others tender these Circumstances, I have thought it very dreadful, but now God hath called me to it, I bless God I have quite other Apprehensions of itj I can now chearfully embrace it as an easie Passage to Glory : And though Death separates from the Enjoyments of each other here, it will be but for a very short Time, and then we shall meet in such Enjoyments as now we cannot conceive, and for ever rejoyce in each other's Happiness. Then reading the Scriptures, and musing with himself, he intimated the great Comfort God conveyed to his Soul in it ; saying, O what an invaluable Treasure is this blessed Word of God; in all Conditions here is a Store of strong Consolation. One desiring his Bible, he said, No, this shall be my Co?npanion to the last Moment of my Life. Thus praying together, reading, meditating, and conversing of Heavenly Things, they waited for the Sheriff, who, when he came, void of all Pity or Civility, hurried them away, scarce suffering them to take Leave of their Friends. But notwithstanding this, and the doleful Mourning of all about them, the Joyfulness of his Countenance was encreased. Thus he left his Prison, and thus he appeared in the Sledge, where they sat about half an Hour, before Officers could force the Horses to draw, at which they were greatly enraged, there being no visible Obstruction from Weight or Way. But at last the Mayor and Sheriff halFd them forwards themselves, Balaam-like driving the Horses. When they came to the Place of Execution, which was sur- rounded with Spectators, many that waited their Coming with great Sorrow, said, That when they saw him and them come with such Chearfulness and Joy, and Evidence of the Presence <&lje l&rtDlmflfl* 141 of God with them, it made Death appear with another Aspect. They first embraced each other with the greatest Affection ;* then two of the Elder Persons praying audibly, they joined with great Seriousness. Then he desired Leave of the Sheriff to pray particularly, but he would not grant it, only askt him if he would pray for the King ? He answered, / pray for all Men. He then requested they might sing a Psalm j the Sheriff told him, It must be with the Ropes about their Necks; which they chear- fully accepted, and sung with such heavenly Joy and Sweetness, that many present said, It both broke and rejoyced their Hearts, Thus in the Experience of the Delightfulness of praising God on Earth, he willingly closed his Eyes on a vain World, to pass to that Eternal Employment, Sept. 30. 1685. All present of all Sorts were exceedingly affected and amazed. Some Officers that had before insultingly said, Surely these Per- sons have no Thoughts of 'Death , but will find themselves sur- prised by it j after said, That they now saw he and they had some- thing extraordinary within, that carried them through with such yoy. Others of them said, They were so convinced of their Happiness, that they would be glad to change Conditions with them. All the Soldiers in general, and all others, lamenting exceedingly, saying, That it was so sad a Thing, to see them so cut off, they scarce knew how to bear it. Some of the most malicious in the Place, from whom nothing but Railing was expected, said, (as they were carried to their Grave in Taunton Church, voluntarily accompanied by most of the Town) That these Persons had left a sufficient Evidence, that they were now glorified Saints in Heaven. A great Officer in the King's Army has been often heard to say, That if you would learn to die, go to the Young Men of Taunton. Much more was utter'd by them, which shewed the blessed and glorious Frames of their Hearts, (to the Glory of Divine Grace) but this is what occurs to Memory. Mr. Benjamin Hewling, about two Hours before his Death, writ this following Letter, which shewed the great Composure of his Mind. 142 %%t Wltgmn ^rartgfacttongf^ Mr. Hewling's Last Letter a little before his Exe- cution, Taunton, Septemb. 30. 1685. Honoured Mother, That News which I know you have a great while feared, and we expected, I must now acquaint you with, That notwith- standing the Hopes you gave in your two last Letters, Warrants are come down for my Execution, and within these few Hours I expect it to be performed. Blessed be the Almighty God that gives Comfort and Support in such' a Day ; how ought we to magnifie his holy Name for all his Mercies, that when we were running on in a Course of Sin, he should stop us in full Career, and shew us that Christ whom we had pierced, and out of his Free Grace enable us to look upon him with an Eye of Faith, believing him able to save to the utmost all such as come to him. Oh admirable long-suffering Patience of God, that when we were dishonouring his Name, he did not take that Time to bring Honour to himself by our Destruction. But he delighteth not in the Death of a Sinner, but had rather he should turn to him and live : And he has many Ways of bringing his own to himself. Blessed be his Holy Name, that through Affliction he has taught my Heartln some Measure to be comformable to his Will, which worketh Patience, and Patience worketh Experience, and Experience Hope, which maketh not ashamed. I bless God I am not ashamed of the Cause for which I lay down my Life ; and as I have engaged in it, and fought for it, so now I am going to seal it with my Blood. The Lord still carry on the same Cause which hath been long on Foot ; and tho' we die in it and for it, I question not but in his own good Time he will raise up other Instruments more worthy to carry it on to the Glory of his Name, and the Advancement of his Church and People. Honoured Mother, I know there has been nothing left un- done by you, or my Friends, for the Saving of my Life, for which I return many hearty Acknowledgments to your self and them all ; and it's my dying Request to you and them, to pardon all Undutifulness and Unkindness in every Relation. Pray give my Duty to my Grandfather and Grandmother, Service to my Unkles and Aunts, and my dear Love to all my Sisters ; to every %%t I£etolinff& 143 Relation and Friend a particular Recommendation. Pray tell ; em all how precious an Interest in Christ is when we come to die, and advise them never to rest in a Christless Estate. For if we are his, it's no Matter what the World do to] us, they can but kill the Body, and blessed be God the Soul is out of their Reach, for I question not but their Malice wishes the Damnation of that, as well as the Destruction of the Body ; which has too evidently appeared by their deceitful flattering Promises. I commit you all to the Care and Protection of God, who has promised to be a Father to the Fatherless, and a Husband to the Widow, and to supply the Want of every Relation. The Lord God of Heaven be your Comfort under these Sorrows, and your Refuge from those Miseries we may easily foresee coming upon poor England, and the poor distressed People of God in it. The Lord carry you through this Vale of Tears with a resigning, submissive Spirit, and at last bring you to himself in Glory ; where I question not but you will meet your dying Son, Benjamin Hewling. Their Characters. They were both of sweet and obliging Tempers, as has appeared in their History, it being a very hard Matter for their worst Enemies, when they once knew 'em well, not to honour and love 'em. Mr. Benjamin, the Elder, reconciled the Lamb and the Lion exactly. In the Field he seem'd made only for War, and any where else, for nothing but Love. He, without Flattery, deserved to be called a very Fine Man, of a lovely Proportion, extreamly well made, as handsom a Meen, and good an Air, as perhaps few in England exceeded him : His Picture is pretty like him. The Younger, Mr. William, somewhat taller, and more slender. His Face fresh and lively, as his Spirit, being Master of an extraordinary Vivacity and Briskness of Temper. Both of 'em Vertuous, Pious, and Couragious, far above their Years, and indeed, seem'd to be Men too soon, one of em not being Twenty, the Eldest but Two and Twenty when they died ; verifying that common Observation, That whatever is perfect sooner than ordinary, has generally a shorter Period prefixed it, than what's more base and ignoble. i44 Wit MLmtxn 'Cran^atttonsf. MR. CHRISTOPHER BATTISCOMB. E was another Young Gentleman of a good Family, and very great Hopes, and of a fair Estate, which lay in Dorsetshire, somewhere between Dorchester and Lyme. He had studied some Time at the Te7nfile, and having Occasions in the Country about the Time of my Lord Russet's Business, he was there seized, on Suspicion of being concerned in it, and clapt into the County Goal at Dorchester, where he behaved himself with that Prudence and winning Sweetness, and shewed so much Wit, and innocent Pleasantry of Temper, as extreamly obliged both all his Keepers and Fellow-prisoners, and even Persons of the best Quality in that Town. ? Tis indeed a genteel, well bred Place, as almost any in England, at such a Distance from Londo?i. The Streets are fair and large, and Buildings pretty regular ; Two sweet, plentiful Rivers running by it. It stands on a Chalky Hill, but wants not Store of good Water. The Market-House is a plea- sant little Pile, that very much sets off the Town. There are Three Churches in it, and One in its adjoining Parish. ? Tis endowed with several Alms-houses, a good Grammar- School well enough provided, which has had the happiness of Ingenious Masters, and by their Care, produced no inconsiderable Number of good Scholars. There are two or three fine old Roman Forti- fications near the Town, which Camden and Speed take Notice of. The People on't are generally Civil and Gallant enough, if not a little on the extream that Way. They knew how to value such a Gentleman as Battzscomb, and made him such frequent Visits in the Prison, till the Place it self was so far from being scandalous, that there was generally all the Conversation, and where you might be sure to meet the best Company in the Town of both sexes. Mr. Battiscomb had the Happiness not to be dis- pleasing to the Fair Sex, who had as much Pity and Friendship for him as consisted with the Rules of Decency and Virtue ; and perhaps their Respect for him did not always stop at Friendship? tho' it still preserved the other Bounds inviolable. Pity is Q$v. Cljrtgtoptjer Batttgcomb* 145 generally but a little Way from Love, especially when the Object of it is any thing extraordinary. But after he had been there some Time, and nothing could be proved against him which could any ways affect him, he was at length, almost un- willingly delivered from this Sort of happy Slavery. And when the Duke landed, appeared with him, and served him with equal Faith and Valour, till the Rout at Sedgmoor, when he fled with the rest, and got up as far as Devonshire, where he was seized in a Disguise, and brought to his Old Palace, the Prison at Dorchester. He behaved himself there the second Time in the same cour- teous, obliging Manner as he did at the first, tho' now he seemed more thoughtful and in Earnest than before, as knowing nothing was to be expected but speedy Death : though his Courage never droopt, but was still the same, if it did not increase with his Danger. At his trial Jeffreys railed at him with so much Eagerness and Barbarity, that he was observed to foam almost upon the Bench. He was so angry with him, because he was a Lawyer, and could have been contented all such as he should be hanged up without any Trial ; and truly 'twas no great Matter whether he or the rest had had that Formality, or no. Mr. Battiscomb was as undaunted at the Bar, as in the Field, or at Execution. How he demeaned him- self in Prison before his Death, take this following Account verbatim, as 'twas written by his Friends. Tho' that which occurred most remarkable after his Sentence, must not be omitted. Several Young Ladies in the Town, among whom one, who is particularly mentioned in the Poem, went to Jeffreys to beg his Life, who repuls'd 'em at such a brutish Rate, as nothing with one Spark of Humanity would have been guilty of, and in a Manner even too uncivil to be mentioned. The Particulars may be seen in the Petition of the Widows and Orphans of that Country. The A ccount given of him by his Relations. He was observed to be always serious and chearful, ready to entertain Spiritual Discourse, manifesting Affection to God's People and his Ordinances ; he seemed to be in a very calm L 146 %l)t ftfllegftem ^rangacttonsf* Indifference to Life or Death, referring himself to God to determine it, expressing his great Satisfaction as to some Opportunities of Escape that were slipt, saying, That truly he someti??ies thought the Cause was too good to flee fro?n suffering in it, though he would use all lawful Means for his Life; but the Providence of God having preve7tted this, he was surt it was best for him, for he said, he blest God he could look into Eternity with Comfort. He said, with Respect to Relations and Friends, to whom his Death would be afflictive, that he was willing to live, if God saw good; but for his own Part, he thought Death much more desirable. He said, / have enjoyed enough of this World, but I never found any thing but Vanity in it, no Rest or Satisfaction. God, who is an Infinite Spiritual Being, is the only suitable Object for the Soul of Man, which is Spiritual in its Nature, and too large to be made happy by all that this World ca7i afford, which is all but sensual. There- fore methinks, I see no Reason why I should be unwilling to leave it by Death, since our Happiness can never be perfected till then, till we leave this Body, where we are so continually clogged with Sin and Vanity, frivolous and foolish Trifles. Death in it self 'is indeed terrible, and Natter al Courage is too low to encounter it; nothing but an Interest in Christ can be our Co7nfort in it, he said, which Co77ifort I hope I have j in- timating much Advantage to his Soul by his former Imprison- ment. The Day he went from Dorchester to Ly77ie, after he had received the News of his Death the next Day, he was in the same serious Chearfulness, declaring still the same Apprehension of the Desireableness of Death, and the great Supports of his Mind under the Thoughts of so sudden passing through it, alone from the Hope of the Security of his Interest in Christ ; taking Leave of his Friends with this Farewel, The? we part here, we shall 77ieet in Heaven. Passing by his Estate, going to Ly77ie, he said, Farewel Te77tporal hiheritance, I a77i now going to 77iy Heavenly, Eternal One. At Ly7ne, the Morning that he died, it appeared that he had the same Supports from God, meeting Death with the same Chearfulness ; and after he had prayed a while to himself, without any Appearance of Reluctancy, yielded up his Spirit, Sept. 12. 1685. 9£r* Cfjrigtopfjer 2Satt#comtu 147 A further Account of the Behaviour of Mr. Christopher Battiscomb, of his last Speech and Prayer, immedi- ately before he suffered at Lyme, the 12th of Sep- tember, 1685. He was a true Protestant to the last, well beloved among the Gentry of that Country : But it was his Fortune to be concerned with the Duke of Monmouth, and was very faithful to him to the last, during the Time of the Bloody Assizes at Dorchester, where he received his Sentence of Death : he was divers Times sent for to the Chamber of the then L. C. J. and prompted with Offers of Life to betray some Gentlemen, which he always refused, saying, he scorned to purchase his Life by such indirect Means ; and he accordingly chose Death rather than Life ; seeing it could not be purchased, but by such unworthy Means. The Day being come, he prepared himself, and received the holy Sacrament, walking down to the Place of Execution, with much Chearfulness and Christian Courage; when he was mounting the Ladder, he smiled, and said, / am not afraid of this, I am going to a better Place, from a poor and miserable World, to a Celestial Paradise, a Heavenly Jerusalem; I might have chosen, whether I would have undergone this Death, if I had heark?ied to the L. C. J. bid it was tip on such unworthy Terms, that should I have accepted of my Pardon, it would have been troublesom to 7nej I die a True Protestant j I am i7i Charity with all Men : God preserve this Nation from Popery ; the Lord bless you all. So taking his Leave of them he knew, after Prayer, he launched into Eternity. A Poem on a Lady that came to my Lord Chief Justice, to beg Mr. Battiscomb 9 s Life, Sister to one of the Sheriffs in the West, which he denied. Harder than thine own Native Rocks ! To let the Charming Silvia kneel, And not one Spark of Pity feel ; Harder than sensless Stones and Stocks ! L 2 148 2t£r. aaiilliam 'itnfyn. 151 an cause you to return to your own Land j he said, Yes, we shall, but not in this World, I am persuaded. September 29th at Night, after he heard he must die the next Morning, he was exceedingly composed and chearful, expressing his Satisfaction in the Will of God : The next Morning he was still more Spiritual and chearful, discovering a very sweet Serenity of Mind in all that he said and did : Whilst he was waiting for the Sheriff, reading the Scriptures, meditating and conversing with those about him of Divine Things, amongst other Things, said he, / have heard much of the Glory of Heaven, but I am now going to behold it, and understand what it is. Being desired to disguise himself to attempt an Escape, he said, No, I cannot tell how to disturb my self about it, and ?nethinks it is not my Busi- ness, now I have other Things to take up my Thoughts j if God saw good to deliver me, he would open some other doorj but see- ing he has not, -it is more for the Honour of his Name we should die, and so be it. One saying to him that most of the Apostles died a violent Death, he replied, Nay, a greater than- the Apostles our Lord himself died, not only a shameful, but a painful death. He further said, This Manner of Death hath been the most terrible Thing in the World to my Thoughts, but I bless God, now am I neither afraid nor ashamed to die. He said, The parting with my Friends, and their Grief for me, is my greatest Difficulty j but it will be but for a very short Time, and we shall meet again in endless Joys, where my dear Father is already entered, him shall I presently joyfully meet. Then musing with himself a while, he with an extraordinary Serious- ness sang these two Verses of one of Herberfs Poems : Death is still working like a Mole, Digging my Grave at each Remove, Let Grace work so, and on my Soul Drop from above, Oh come ! For thou dost know the Way ; Or if to me thou wilt not move, Remove me where I need not say, Drop from above. He then read the 53d of Isaiah, and said, He had heard many blessed Sermons from that Chapter, especially from the 16th 152 %t>z WXz&mn ^ranssacttonss* Verse, All we like Sheep have gone astray ', we have turned every one to his own Way, but the Lord hath laid on him the Iniquities of us all j seeming to intimate some Impress made on his Soul from them, but was interrupted ; then he said, Christ is all : When the Sheriff came he had the same Chearfulness and Serenity of Mind in taking Leave of his Friends, and in the Sledge, which* seemed to increase to the last, (as those present have affirmed) joining in Prayer, and in singing a Psalm with great Appearance of Comfort and Joy in his Countenance, in so much that some of his Enemies (that had before censured his Chearfulness for Unthoughtfulness of his Danger, and therefore expected to see him much surprized) now professed they were greatly astonished, to see such a Young Man leave the World, and go through Death as he did. Mr. Jenkyn's Letter to Mrs. Scot, on the 26th of September, 1685. Dear Sister, The News which came in my Brother's Letter of the 2 2d Instant to Mr. Dewy, did not at all surprize me, for indeed I expected no other ; and seeing all Hopes of saving my Life are blasted, I thought my self bound to write a Line or two to so near a Relation as your self, wherein I might take my Leave of you, and bid you farewel, till we shall meet again in Glory, and never be separated more : As for my own Part, tho' such a Sort of Death as I am like to suffer, be that which I always dreaded, when at a Distance I have sometimes thought of it, yet I thank my God now it draws near, even but a few Hours off, I find my self supported under the Thoughts of it, and hope by his Strength, who will never forsake his own, I shall be enabled chearfully to undergo it with Glory to his Name, and Comfort to my own, and the Souls of others that are more nearly concerned forme ; and as I have made it my own Endeavour to submit to the Will of God in this sad Dispensation without murmuring or repining, I hope you have been sensible of your Duty in the same Respect, which is, patiently to submit to his Will, and eye his Hand in this severe Stroak : And tho' God has been pleased to deny Success to your Endeavours for the saving of my Life, yet I am ®$z. ffiQiilliam 3flenfcptu 153 satisfied nothing has been wanting on your Parts ; and for all the Trouble you have been at on my Account, tho' I do not live to shew my Gratitude, yet I render you my dying Thanks, and beg your Prayers for my Support in the last Moments of my Life. If you receive this before my Death, the certain Time of which I have not Notice of, pray remember my Love to my Brother, and Thanks for all Kindnesses ; and as for my Young Relations, my Prayer for them shall be, That they may see more happy Days than I have done, and die a more peaceable, I can- not say more happy Death. And now, dear Sister, I take my Leave of you, and commit you to the Protection of that God, who has made every Thing beautiful in his Time, and will shew you the Meaning of this Providence, which now we do not understand, to whom I trust I am now going, and into the Enjoyment of whose Presence I doubt not but e'er long you will meet, dear Sister, Your affectionate Brother, William Jenkyn. Mr. Jenkyn's Letter to his Mother, on the 29th of September, at 12 at Night, Taunton. Dear and Honoured Mother, I have even now received the News of Execution to Morrow, which, tho' I have so short Notice of, yet I hope I am prepared for it, and by God's Strength enabling me, I shall joyfully be carried through it : The Kindness you have been pleased to shew in your great Concern for me since I have been under this Trouble, as well as the Duty I owe to so near a Relation as your self, engages me to acquaint you with my present Condition for your Satisfaction, which truly is such, that I must beg you to accept this present Letter for my last Farewel : And tho' this sad Providence cannot but be grievous to so near and affection- ate a Relation as your self, yet I hope it already has, and still does, yield the peaceable Fruits of Righteousness to your self and me, who have been severely exercised with it : As for my own Part, I hope I can truly say, that God has by his Providence weaned me from the World, and made me willing to leave it, and to be dissolved, that I may be with Christ, which is far better : 154 ^t HSlzttmn r d:ran0actton0. And now I am come to die ; I hope I can truly say, I have nothing else to do but to die ; and having fought a good Fight, and finished my Course, I am now in Expectation of that Crown of Reward, which God the Righteous Judge of the whole Earth has promised to all those that love his Appearing and as it is my great Work to be now every Moment fitting my self for my great and last Change, so ? tis the Duty which belongs to you, and the rest of my dear Relations, to resign me up into the Hands of that God, whose I am, and to whom I am going, and not repine at his Righteous Will, which we ought quietly to submit unto. I bless God I die with a clear Conscience, and though I have deserved much worse at the Hands of God for my past Sins, than I am like to undergo, yet I count, with Respect to Man, I die a Martyr for the Protestant Religion, and meerly for doing my Duty in opposing of that Flood of Popery, which seemed to be just overwhelming the Church and Interest of Christ in these Nations ; and I wish that the Prudentialists of our Age, that have withdrawn their helping Hand from so glorious a Design, do not within a few Days feel the Smart they have deserved by this their Baseness. But being now just leaving the World, it's grievous to look back on these Things ; where- fore, dear and honoured Mother, I take Leave of you also, hoping that I shall again meet with you in that Place of Happi- ness, where all Tears shall be wiped down from our Eyes, and we shall sorrow no more. I have nothing more to say, but to return you my dying Thanks for all the Trouble and Care you have been at for the saving my Life, which tho 5 God has not thought fit to make successful, yet my Thankfulness is equally due to you for your Endeavours, as if he had ; therefore I shall end with the subscribing my self, Dear and Honoured Mother, Your Thankful and Dutiful Son, William Jenkyn. Mr. Jenhyn's Letter to Mrs. Gourden, on the 30th of September, 1685. at 4 Morning, Taunton. Dear Sister, Though you are at a great Distance from my Eye, yet you are very near my Heart, so that to leave the World before I 9£r* MliUiant' 3|enfcpn* 155 have wrote a Line or two to bid you farewel, and comfort you under this sad Providence, would be uncomfortable to me : I hope you have by this Time learnt how to welcome evil as well as good Tidings, and submit to the wise Disposer of all Things, who knows what is good for us, better than we do for our selves : Tho' I question not but the News of my Death, especially in such a violent manner, as within a few Hours I am to suffer it, will be afflictive to you ; yet I would beg you to consider the Happiness which I am gone to, but a few Years sooner taken out of a wicked and troublesom World unto the Quire of triumphant Martyrs in £lory, which place of Happiness, tho' I have not deserved by any thing of my own Merits, yet for the Merits of my Mediator and Saviour, who has purchased more for me, than can enter into my Heart to conceive, I doubt not but to have a Mansion prepared for me in that Place, where the Wicked cease from troubling, and the Weary are at Rest. And now, dear Sister, I have nothing more to do in this World, but to be preparing and fitting my self for this Place of Rest, which within a few Hours I am going to. I therefore leave you and yours to the Protection and Blessing of God, who is able to keep and support you under this and all other his afflictive Provi- dences, and bring a good Issue out of them ; and who will in his own good Time conduct you safe to that Place of Happiness, where you will meet alone for Christ's Sake, Dear, Dear Sister, Your Loving and Affectionate Brother, William Jenkyn. Pray remember my Love and Respects to my Brother, and all that enquire after me. His Character. He was a very promising and ingenious young Gentleman ; he had a great deal of ready Wit, and an extraordinary Briskness and Gaitey. He was a very good Scholar, had run through a Course of Philosophy ; but his particular Inclination was to the Mechanical Part of it, wherein he had a very happy Genius, and performed many pretty Things. He wrote very good clean Latin. He was indifferent tall, pretty thin, a fair Complexion, 156 W$z Mt&tztn ^rangactionsu his Nose a little inclining to one Side, being hurt in his Infancy. He led a sober, vertuous Life, and dy'd a happy Death at Taunton , September 30, 1685. LADY LISLE. ?AD those Persons who suffered about Momnouth's Business, fell only into the Hands of Cannibals, some of 'em, at least, had 'scaped better than they did from Jeffreys. Those more tame and civil Creatures would have spared the Old and Whithered, though they had devoured the Young and Tender. But no Age, no Sex made any Difference here ; and as those who were just come into the World, Children and Girls of ten or a dozen Years old were refused Pardon ; so those who were half out of it, would not be suffered to tumble into the Grave intire, tho', as Juvenal says of Priam, they had scarce Blood enough left to singe the Knife of the Sacrifices. An Instance of this was my Lady Lisle, of such an Age, that she almost slept on her very Trial, condemned for as small a Matter as has been known, by one of those dormant Laws, made only in Terrorem, but hardly ever executed only for corresponding with Nelthorp, an out-law'd Person, and, as was pretended, giving him Shelter at her House, and Hicks, who brought him thither. For Hicks, he was not then convicted, nor in any Proclamation, and so 'tis a Question whether she could, even in Rigour of Law, deserve Death on his Account. For Nelthorp, he himself says in his last Speech, [That he was wholly a Stranger to that worthy Lady ; neither did she, as he verily believes, know who he was, or his Name, till he was taken.] For this she was found Guilty, and lost her Head at Winchester. Her Case was thought so hard, that the Honour- able House of Parliament have now reverst her Judgment. At her Death she made the following Speech. The last Speech of the Lady Alicia Lisle. Gentlemen, Friends, and Neighbours, it may be expected that I should say something at my Death, and in Order thereunto I 3Lati£ JLi<. 157 shall acquaint you, that my Birth and Education was both near this Place, and that my Parents instructed me in the Fear of God, and I now die of the Reformed Protestant Religion ; believing that if ever Popery should return into this Nation, it would be a very great and severe Judgment; that I die in Expectation of the Pardon of all my Sins, and of Acceptance with God the Father, by the imputed Righteousness of Jesus Christ, he being the End of the Law for Righteousness to every one that believes ; I thank God through Jesus Christ, that I do depart under the Blood of Sprinkling, which speaketh better Things than that of Abel j God having made this Chastisement an Ordinance to my Soul. I did once as little expect to come to this Place on this Occasion, as any Person in this Place or Nation ; therefore let all learn not to be high-minded, but fear : The Lord is a Soveraign, and will take what Way he sees best to glorifie himself, in and by his poor Creatures ; and I do humbly desire to submit to his Will, praying to him, That I may possess my Soul in Patience. The Crime that was laid to my Charge, was for entertaining a Nonconformist Minister and others in my House ; the said Minister being sworn to have been in the late Duke of Monmouth's Army ; but I have been told, that if I had denied them, it would not at all have affected me ; I have no Excuse but Surprise and Fear, which I believe my Jury must make Use of to excuse their Verdict to the World. I have been also told, That the Court did use to be of Counsel for the Prisoner ; but instead of Advice, I had Evidence against me from thence; which tho' it were only by hearsay, might possibly affect my Jury ; my Defence being but such, as might be expected from a weak Woman ; but such as it was, I did not hear it Repeated again to the Jury ; which, as I have been informed, is usual in such Cases. However, I forgive all the World, and therein all those that have done me wrong ; and in particular, I forgive Colonel Penruddock, although he told me, that he could have taken these Men before they came to my House. And I do likewise forgive him, who desired to be taken away from the Grand Jury to the Petty Jury, that he might be the more nearly concerned in my Death. As to what may be objected in Reference to my Conviction, that I gave it under my Hand, that I had discoursed with Nelthropj that could be no 158 ^Ije Mtgtzzn Crangacttongu Evidence against me, being after my Conviction and Sentence : I do acknowledge his Majesty's Favour in revoking my Sen- tence ; I pray God to preserve him, that he may long reign in Mercy, as well as Justice, and that he may reign in Peace ; and that the Protestant Religion may flourish under him. I also return Thanks to God and the Reverend Clergy, that assisted me in my Imprisonment. Alicia Lisle. MR. RICHARD NELTHROP. IS Name is often enough met with in Wesfs and Rumsetfs Plot, and good Reason too, he being not near to answer for himself. As to what he was accused, out-lawed, and executed for, his being con- cerned in a Design for the Assassination of the King and Duke, he solemnly avers, as may be seen below in his Speech, {That he was always highly against it, and detested any such Thing, was never in the least concerned in it, neither in Purse or Person; never knew of any Arms bought for that Intent, nor did believe there was any such Design^ Than which, what Words could be more full and satisfactory ? He went away in the heat of Swearing, and returned with the Duke of Monmouth, thinking it his Duty, as he says, to hazard his Life for the Preservation of the Protestant Religion and English Liberties ; but as to the Duke of Monmouth's being declared King, he was wholly passive in it. He was first committed to Salisbury Prison, where he had several Disputes with a Learned and Good Man, whose Opinion then differed from his, concerning the Lawfulness of defending our selves by Arms against illegal Violence, which was his firm Judgment. Thence he was brought to London, and imprisoned in Newgate. He rejected there, with Scorn, some Offers made him of saving his own Life by taking away other Mens ; and tho' he was under inex- pressible Trouble during his close Confinement there, which at length arose to Distraction, and the Impair of his Reason ; yet 9£i\ BicfjarU ilMtfjrop* 159 'tis remarkable that he, as Batenici7i before him, before he came to die, after Sentence, was very calm and lively again, the entire Exercise of his Judgment and Understanding returning, with more Joy and Comfort than he had before Pain and Misery. He writ one Letter to his Parents, another to his Children, here inserted together with his last Speech at his Execution the 30th of Octob. 1685. At 2 in the Morning he wrote the Letter to his Parents, &c. Wherein he speaks much of his Brother, and Fellow- Sufferer, Mr.* Ayloff, if I mistake not, whom he says, [He could embrace with more Joy in the Field of Sufferings than ever he could have done had he met him in the Field crown' d with Victoiy and Lawrels.] Mr. Richard Nelthrop's Letter to his Parents, • Brothers, and Sister. Dearest Parents, and ever loving brothers, and tender-hearted and beloved slster. Through the infinite Goodness of God, the nearer I approach my End, the more Joy and Comfort I find in my suffering Estate, (that I may so call it :) I can through Mercy say, that I have found more true Delight and Content this Night, than in all the Days and Nights of my whole Life ; and I hope the Lord will continue it, that his Name may be glorified by me the meanest and poorest of all his Servants, but through free Grace faithful unto the End : My soul is ravished, I can hardly write, and my Comforts are more unspeakable than my Terrors were. I did this Evening see my dearest Brother and Companion ; his Face was to me as that of an Angel, and he gave me that Comfort, that I cannot but say my Love to him is beyond what I ever had to my dearest Relations. When God comes, every Thing has a Beauty and Lustre upon it, here is an Answer of Prayers, and such an Answer, as, dearest Relations, must engage you all to be constant in the Performance of that Duty, which, like Jacob's Ladder, tho' it stand upon the Earth, yet it reaches * This pious and couragious Man, Mr. Ayloff, suffered Martyrdom in London , about the same Time that Mr. Nelthrop did. 160 Ctje Mz&mn ^rangacttongf* up to Heaven : Here's the Love of God made manifest to a poor Sinner at the last Hour, like the Thief upon the Cross, he that never knew before what the Love of God was to his Soul, finds it now filled with it, and running over. Now bless the Lord, O my Soul ! Yea, all that is within me, bless his holy Name for this Dispensation. Now Light appears out of Dark- ness in the Face of Jesus ; now all worldly Joy and Comforts seem to me (as they are) Things not hard to part with ; Father, Mother, Brothers, Sister, Wife, Children, House, and Lands are (as my dear Saviour saith) to be parted with for him, or we are not worthy of him : I bless his Name, I find no Reluctancy to do it ; he has brought me to his Foot-stool, and I can say heartily, The Will of the Lord be done in this Matter. I never before but saw a Beauty in worldly Comforts, but now those seem so faded by the greater Lustre and Beauty, that I see in God in Christ Jesus, that I am astonished where I have been wandering all my Days, spending my Time and my Money for that which is not Bread. O strive to get a Taste of this Love of God in Christ Jesus ! And it will perfectly wean you from this deceitful, foolish World. What is worldly Honour and Riches ? O set not your Hearts upon them, but get a Treasure in Heaven, that your Hearts may be there also. O lose no Time ! For if you ever knew the Sweetness of it, you would never be at Rest till you found him whom your Soul loved ; it will be more, yea, in- finitely more than all worldly Injoyments can afford you, tho' in their greatest Perfection ; it will make your Life sweet, and your Death most comfortable : It is the Bread which this World knoweth not of, and therefore maketh little or no Inquiry after it. Dearest Relations, whilst you and my other dear Friends are like Aaron and Hur, holding up the Hands of Moses, I am through Grace, getting Victory over the Amalekites. I can embrace my dear and beloved Brother and Companion with more Joy in the Field of suffering, than ever I could have done, had I met him crowned with the Lawrels of Victory : O the Mercy to die with such a Friend, and such a valiant Souldier of Jesus, who hath kept his Garments clean. I now begin to pity you that stay behind, who have many Temptations to conflict with ; for a little, yea, a very little Time, and my Warfare will be accomplished ; and if God continue his Love and Influence 9£r* EicljarD ipelt^rop. 161 upon my Soul, it will be both short and sweet. I have little of this World about me, I leave you all the Legacy of what was ever dearest to me, the best of Wives, and five poor Children, who must pass through an evil and sinful World ; but I have committed them to God, who hath commanded to cast our Fatherless Children and Widows upon him. Dear Parents, Brothers, Sister, all Adieu, my Time draws on, my Paper is finished, and your dying Child and Brother recommends you all to him who is All-sufficient, to the God of Peace that brought again from the Dead our Lord Jesus, the great Shepherd of the Sheep, through the Blood of the everlasting Covenant, who will make you perfect in every good Work to do his Will, working in you that which is well-pleasing in his Sight, through Jesus Christ, to whom be Glory for ever and ever, Amen. Richard Nelthrop. From the Palace of Newgate, Oct. the 30th, 1685. Two of the Clock in the Morning. Mr. Richard Nelthrofi's Letter to his Children. My Dear Children, The Providence of God has so ordered it, that your poor and ever-loving Father is taken from you in such a Manner as may cast both worldly Loss and Reproach upon you ; but I charge you let not this be a Stumbling-block to you in the way of God, but that you remember your Creator in the Days of your Youth : That you never neglect a Day without reading the Holy Scripture, wherein you'll find your Duty both to God and Man ; there you'll find the Way to everlasting Life ; there you'll find Christ Jesus instructing you, and dying for you. Seek first the Kingdom of Heaven, and all other Things will be added to you : After your Duty to God Almighty, your dying Father charges and conjures you, that you will answer it at the great Day of Appearance of our dearest Saviour, that you be dutiful and loving to the best of Mothers, as long as God shall continue that great Mercy to you : Hearken to her Voice, and be obedient to the Words of her Mouth, for she'll be faithful to your Souls and Bodies ; and remember that Obedience to Parents hath the M 162 the Word of God, Confession of Faith, Catechisms larger and 9£r. 3o|in ItfDH, 185 shorter, and likewise I join my Testimony against Popery, Perjury ^ Profanity, Heresie, and everything contrary to sound Doctrine. In the Close, as a dying Person, and as one who has obtained Mercy of the Lord to be faithful, I would humbly leave it upon Godly Ministers to be faithful for their Lord and Master, and not to hold their Peace in such a day, when so many ways are taken for injuring of him, his Name* Way, Sanctuary, Ordinances,. Crown, and Kingdom, I hope there will be found a party in this- Land, that will continue for him and his Matters, in all Hazards,, and as Faithfulness is called for in Ministers, so Professors would concern themselves that they countenance not, nor abet any thing inconsistent with former Principles and Practices. Let the Land consider, how neutral and indifferent we are grown in the Matters of God, even like Efihraim long ago, a Cake not turned.. As concerning that which is the Ground of my Death, viz* Preaching here and there in some Corners ; I bless my God, I have not the least Challenge for it ; and tho' those that con- demned me are pleased to call such Preachings Rendezvouses of Rebellion, yet I must say this of them, they were so far from being reputed such in my Eyes, that if ever Christ had a People^, or Party, wherein his Soul took Pleasure, I am bold to say, these Meetings were a great Part of them ; the Shining and Glory of God was eminently seen amongst these Meetings, the con- vincing Power and Authority of our Lord went out with his Servants in those blasphemously nick-nam'd Conventicles : This, I say, without Reflection upon any. I have a Word to say farther, that God is calling Persons to Repentance, and to do their first Work : O that Scotland were a mourning Land,, and that Reformation were our Practice, according as we are sworn in the Covenant. Again, that Christians of Grace and Experience would study more straightness and Stability in this Day, when so many are turning to the Right Hand, and many to the Left ; he that endureth to the End shall be saved ; he hath appointed the Kingdom for such as continue with him in his Temptations. Next, If ever you expect to have the Form of the House shewed you in all the Laws thereof, Goings-out-thereof, and Comings-in-thereof, then think it no Shame to take Shame to you for all that has been done : Sitting down on this Side 186 %l)t Wimtvn ^rangfam'ottgf* Jordan, is like to be our Bane. Oh ! when shall we get up and run after him, till he brings us into the promised Land, let us up and tlfter him with all our Heart, and never rest till he return. I recommend my Wife and Young One to the Care and Faith- fulness of the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob j the God that fed me to this Day, and who is the God of my Salvation, their God and my God, their Father and my Father. I am also hope- ful, that Christian Friends and Relations will not be unmindful of them when I am gone. Lastly, I do further bear my Testimony to the Cross of Christ, and bless him that ever he counted me worthy to appear for him in such a Lot as this : Glory to him that ever I heard tell of him, and that ever he fell upon such a Method of dealing with me as this ; and therefore let none that loves Christ and his Righteous Cause, be offended in me. And as I have lived in the Faith of this, that the Three King- doms are Married Lands, so I die in the Faith of it, that there will be a Resurrection of his Name, Word, Cause, and of all his Interest therein, tho' I dare not determine the Time when, nor the Manner how, but leave all these Things to the infinitely wise God, who has done, and will do all Things well. Oh that he would return to this Land again, to repair our Breaches, and take away our Back-sliding, and appear for his Work. Oh that he would pass by Scotland once again, and make our Time a Time of Love. Co?ne, Lord Jesus, come quickly. Himself hasten it in his own Time and Way. The Lord is my Light and Life, my Joy, my Song, and my Salvation ; the God of his Chosen be my Mercy this Day, and the inriching Comforts of the Holy Ghost keep up and carry me fair through, to the Glory of his Grace, the Edification of his People, and my own eternal Advantage. Amen. August i^tk, 1679, Tolbooth, Sic subscrib. * ante horam sefttiman. John Kidd. Thus, Reader, having given thee a faithful Account of the Behaviour and Dying-Speeches of the most Eminent Persons who suffered in SCOTLAND, 1 shall return again for London, where the Last Person of Quality that suffered, was the DUKE of MONMOUTH, whose Expedition and Sufferings, &*c. you have in the following Pages. 187 JAMES DUKE OF MONMOUTH. HE Last Person with whom we shall conclude this mournful Tragedy, and the Greatest in it is the late James Duke of Monmouth; One indeed, who, if he had been a little less, might have been at this Time One of the Greatest Men both in England and the World. By- reason of some Passages in his Life, not so defensible, 'twas thought, at first, better to draw a Veil before that unfortunate Prince, and say nothing at all of him. But what Allowances are made for Custom and Education, God only knows. I remember a shrewd Answer given to an Objection of this Nature, Where said One, should he learn any better? But however, where there has been any Time to think soberly of past Actions, or none of that Nature reiterated, Charity is oblig'd to judge favourably. And besides, the good West-Country- Men would be very angry if they should not find their Master that they loved so well, and suffered so much for, among the rest of these Noble Heroes. None can deny but he was a Great General, a Man of Courage and Conduct, and great Personal Valour, having signaliz'd him- self both at Mons and Maestricht, so as to gain an high and just Reputation. He was all along true and firm to the Protestant In- terest in and out of Parliament, tho' abhorring any base Way of promoting it, as well as his Friend my Lord Russel. This is in- tended as a Character rather, or very short Compendium, than any History of his Life. He was all along the Peoples Darling, whose Hearts were entirely his by his Courtesie and Affability, as other Persons lost 'em by their Sourness and haughty Pride. After Russet's Death he went into Flanders, whence had he prosecuted his Design, and gone, as 'tis said he intended, into the Emperor's Service, how many Lawrels might he have won, and how many more would now have been growing for him ? But his Fate was otherwise. — He came over into England, an exact Account of whose Enterprise another Place of this Book presents you as 'twas compiled by One present in all that Action. After the Defeat of his Army at Sedgmoor, he fled with my Lord Grayy who was first taken, and he himself a little after brought up to 188 ^Ije aaiejStem ^rangacttons?* London> and on his Attainder in Parliament, beheaded on Tower-Hill. 'Tis said, a certain Brave Old Officer, who then came over with him, and since with the Prince, offered with a small Party of Horse to have ventured through the Guards, and took him off the Scaffold. But they could not be got together ; his Time was come. Providence had designed other Things, that our Deliverance should be more just, and peaceable, and wonderful, and that the Glory thereof should be reserved for their Sacred Majesties, King William and Queen Mary. The Thing I shall in the next Place do, that I may leave out nothing material, relating to the Western Affair, is to insert the late Duke of Monmouth's Declaration, as it was taken from a Copy Printed in Holland 'in the Year 1685. The Declaration of James Duke of Monmouth, and the Noblemen, Gentlemen, and others, now in Arms for the Defence and Vindication of the Protestant Re- ligion, and the Laws, Rights, and Priviledges of England. As Government was originally instituted by God, and this or that Form of it chosen and submitted to by Men, for the Peace, Happiness, and Security of the Governed, and not for the Pri- vate Interest and Personal Greatness of those that Rule : So that Government hath always been esteemed the best, where the Supream Magistrates have been invested with all the Power and Prerogatives, that might capacitate them, not only to preserve the People from Violence and Oppression, but to promote their Prosperity ; and yet where nothing was to belong to them by the Rules of the Constitution, that might enable them to injure and oppress them, And it hath been the Glory of England above most other Nations, that the Prince had all intrusted with him that was necessary, either for the advancing the Welfare of the People, or for his own Protection in the Discharge of his Office ; and withal stood so limited and restrained by the Fundamental Terms of the Constitution, That without a Violation of his own Oath, as well as the Rules and Measures of the Government, he 3jame£ 2Dufee of fl^onmoutfj. 189 could do them no Hurt, or exercise any Act of Authority, but through the Administration of such Hands as stood obnoxious to be punished, in case they transgressed : So that according to the Primitive Frame of the Government, the Prerogatives of the Crown, and the Priviledges of the Subject, are so far from justling one another, that the Rights reserved unto the People, tended to render the King Honourable and Great, and the Prerogatives settled on the Prince, were in Order to the Subjects Protection and Safety. But all humane Things being Subject to Perversion, as well as Decay, it hath been the Fate of the English Government to be often changed and wrested from what it was in the first Settlement and Institution. And we are particularly compelled to say, that all the Boundaries of the Government have of late been broken, and nothing left unattempted for turning our limi- ted Monarchy into an absolute Tyranny. For such hath been the Transaction of Affairs within this Nation for several Years last past, that though the Protestant Religion and Liberties of the People were fenced and hedged about by as many Laws as the Wisdom of Man could devise for their Preservation against Popery and Arbitrary Power, our Religion hath been all along counter- mined by Popish Counsels, and our Priviledges ravished from us by Fraud and Violence. And more especially, the whole Course and Series of the Life of the D. of York, hath been but one con- tinued Conspiracy against the Reformed Religion and the Rights of the Nation. For who ever considers his contriving the Burn- ing of London, his instigating a Confederacy with France, and a War with Holland, his fomenting the Popish Plot, and encourag- ing the Murther of Sir Ed. Godfrey to stifle it ; his charging Treason against Protestants, and suborning Witnesses to swear the Patriots of their Religion and Liberties out of their Lives, his hiring execrable Villains to assassinate the late Earl of Essex, and causing those others to be clandestinely cut off, in Hopes to conceal it ; his advising and procuring the Prorogation and Dis- solution of Parliaments, in Order to prevent their looking into his Crimes, and that he might escape the Justice of the Nation ; such can imagine nothing so black and horrid in itself, or so ruinous and destructive to Religion and the Kingdom which we may not expect from him. The very Tyrannies, which he hath exercised since he snatched the Crown from his Brother's Head, do leave none under a Pos- sibility of flattering themselves with Hopes of Safety, either in their Consciences, Persons, or Estates : For in Defiance of all the Laws and Statutes of the Realm, made for the Security of the Reformed Protestant Religion, he not only began his Reign with a bare-faced avowing himself of the Romish Religion ; but hath called in Multitudes of Priests and Jesuits, for whom the Law makes it Treason to come into this Kingdom ; and hath im- powered them to exercise their idolatries. And by his being daily present at the Worship of the Mass, hath publickly assisted at the greatest Fopperies of their Superstition. Neither hath he been more tender in trampling upon the Laws which concern our Properties, seeing in two Proclamations, whereof the one requires the collecting of the Customs, and the other the continuing that Part of the Excise which was to expire with the late King's Death ; he has violently, and against all the Law of the Land, broken in upon our Estates. Neither is it any Extenuation of his Tyranny, that he is countenanced in it by an extrajudicial Opinion of seven or eight suborned and forsworn Judges ; but rather declaring the Greatness and Extent of the Conspiracy against our Rights, and that there is no Means left for our Relief but by Force of Arms ; for advancing those to the Bench that were the Scandal of the Bar, and constituting those very Men to declare the Laws, who were accused and branded in Parlia- ment for perverting them, we are precluded all Hopes of Justice in Westminster- Hall j and through packing together by false Returns, new illegal Charters, and other corrupt Means ; he doth at once deprive us of all Expectations of Succour, where our Ancestors were wont to find it ; and Hopes to render that which ought to be the Peoples Fence against Tyranny, and the Con- servator of their Liberties, the Means of subverting all our Laws, and of establishing of his Arbitrariness, and confirming our Thraldom. So that unless we could be contented to see the Reformed Protestant Religion, and such as profess it, extirpated ; Popish Superstition and Idolatry established, the Laws of the Land trampled under Foot ; the Liberties and Rights of the English People subverted ; and all that is Sacred and Civil, or of Regard (amongst Men of Vertue and Piety) violated ; and un- less we could be willing to be Slaves as well as Papists, and forget 3!ameg 2Dufee of S^onmoutf)* 191 the Example of our Noble and Generous Ancestors, who con- veyed our Priviledges to us at the Expence of their Blood and Treasure ; and withal be unmindful of our Duty to God, our Country and Posterity ; deaf to the Cries and Groans of our op- pressed Friends, and be satisfied, not only to see them and our selves Imprisoned, Robbed, and Murthered, but the Protestant Interest-'throughout the whole World betrayed to France and Rome j we are bound as Men and Christians, and that in Dis- charge of our Duty to God and our Country, and for the Satis- faction of the Protestant Nations round about us, to betake our selves to Arms. Which we take Heaven and Earth to Witness, we should not have done, had not the Malice of our Enemies de- prived us of all other Means of Redress ; and were not the Miseries that we already feel, and those which do further threaten us, worse than the Calamities of War. And it is not for any Personal Injuries, or Private Discontents, nor in Pursu- ance of any corrupt Interest, that we take our Swords into our Hands, but for vindicating our Religion, Laws and Rights, and rescuing our Country from Ruin and Destruction, and for preserv- ing our selves, Wives and Children from Bondage and Idolatry. Wherefore, before God, Angels, and Men, we stand acquitted from, and do charge upon our Enemies, all the Slaughter and Devastations that unavoidably accompany an intestine War. Now therefore we do hereby Solemnly Declare and Proclaim War against J. D. of Y. as a Murtherer, and an Assassinator of innocent Men, a Traitor to the Nation, and Tyrant over the People. And we would have none that appear under his Ban- ner, to flatter themselves with Expectation of Forgiveness, it being our firm Resolution to prosecute him and his Adherents, without giving way to Treaties or Accommodations, until we have brought him and them to undergo what the Rules of the Consti- tution, and the Statutes of the Realm, as well as the Laws of Nature, Scripture, and Nations judge to be a Punishment due to the Enemies of God, Mankind, their Country, and all Things that are Honourable, Vertuous, and good. And though we cannot avoid being sensible, that too many have, from Cowardice, Covetousness, and Ambition, co-operated to the subverting our Religion, and enslaving their Country ; yet we would have none from a Despair of finding Mercy, persevere i92 W$z mmt^n <(l\:anHttion#. in their Crimes, nor continue the Ruin of the Kingdom : For we exclude none from the Benefit of Repentance, that will join with us in retrieving what they have been accessory to the Loss of ; nor do we design Revenge upon any, but the Obstinate, and such as shall be found at this Juncture yielding Aid and Assistance to the said J. D. of Y. And that we way both govern our selves in the Pursuit of this Glorious Cause, wherein we are engaged, and give Encourage- ment to all that shall assist us in so Righteous and Necessary an Undertaking ; we do in the Presence of the Lord, who knows the Secrets of all Hearts, and is the Avenger of Deceit and Fals- hood, proclaim and publish what we aim at ; and for the obtain- ing whereof, we have both determined to venture, and are ready to lay down our Lives. And tho' we are not come into the Field to introduce Anarchy and Confusion, or for laying aside any Part of the Old English Government ; yet our Purposes and Resolutions are, to reduce Things to that Temperament and Bal- lance, that future Rulers may remain able to do all the Good that can be either desired or expected from them, and it may not be in their Power to invade the Rights, and infringe the Liberties of the People. And whereas our Religion, the most Valuable Thing we lay Claim unto, hath been shaken by unjust Laws, undermined by Popish Counsels, and is now in Danger to be subverted ; We are therefore resolved, to spend our Blood for preserving it to our selves and Posterity ; nor will we lay down our Arms, till we see it established and secured beyond all Probability of being supplanted and overthrown, and until all the Penal Laws against Protestant Dissenters be repealed, and Legal Provision made against their being disturbed by Reason of their Consciences, and for their enjoying an equal Liberty with other Protestants. And that the Meekness and Purity of our Principles, and the Moderation and Righteousness of our End, may appear unto all Men : We do declare, That we will not make War upon, or de- stroy any for their Religion, how false and erroneous soever : So that the very Papists, provided they withdraw from the Tents of our Enemies, and be not found guilty of conspiring our Destruc- tion, or Abettors of them that seek it, have nothing to fear or apprehend from us, except what may hinder their altering our 3[ame£ 2Dufce of 9£artmoutf)+ 193 Laws, and indangering our Persons in the Profession of the Re- formed Doctrine, and Exercise of our Christian Worship. Our Resolution in the next Place is, to maintain all the just Rights and Priviledges of Parliament, and to have Parliaments annually chosen and held, and hot prorogued, dissolved, or dis- continued within the Year, before Petitions be first answered, and Grievances redressed. And seeing many of the Miseries, under which the Nation doth groan, arise from displacing such out of the Number of Judges, as would not, for promoting Popish and Arbitrary Designs, wrest and misapply the Laws ; and from constituting corrupt and mercenary Men in their Rooms, on Purpose to stretch the Laws beyond the Reason and Intention of them, and to declare that for Law which is not : We can neither with Silence pass over the mentioning of them, nor should we have Peace in our selves, if we did not endeavour to prevent the like Mischief in Time to come. For by Reason of ill Men being advanced to the Bench, and holding their Places only durante bene-ftlacito, many Per- sons have been condemned in exorbitant Fines for no Crimes, or for very small ones : Many Statutes made for the Safety of the Subject, particularly the Habeas Corpus Act, have been wickedly eluded to the Oppression of the Innocent and Loyal Men. The Popish Lords that were impeached in Parliament, for a most hellish Conspiracy, have, to the subverting the Rights of the House of Commons, and trampling on the Rights of the House of Lords, been discharged a7id set free. The imposing a Mayor and Sheriff upon the City of London by Fraud and Violence, have been justified, and those who in Discharge of their Duty opposed it, illegally prosecuted, and arbitrarily punished. Londo7t, and other Cities and Corporations, have been robb'd of their Charters, upon unrighteous Judgments of pretended Forfeitures : Sir Thomas Armstrong executed without being allowed the Benefit of a Trial : Col. Algernon Sidney condemned to die, upon the Deposition of one scanda- lous Witness : And that Loyal and Excellent Person, the late William L. Russel, Murthered for alledged Crimes ; in Refer- ence to which, if all had been true, which was sworn against him, yet there was nothing which according to Law could have reached his Life. Upon the Considerations aforesaid, we further O 194 *3P&* Wtt&ttvn 'QEtangaction^ declare, that we will have Care taken for the future for debarring ignorant, scandalous, and mercenary Men from the Administra- tion of Justice, and that the Judges shall hold their Places by the ancient Tenure of quamdiu se bene gesserint; and to leave it to the Wisdom of a Parliament to settle some Way and Method for the Approbation of such as shall be advanced to the Degree and Dignity of Judges. And for as much as the Invasion made on the Rights ot Cities/Burroughs, and Towns Corporate, by the Seisure of their Charters, whether by Surrender, or upon Pretence of Forfeiture, have been wholly Arbitrary and Illegal ; we likewise therefore declare, we will, to our utmost, endeavour to see them repos- sessed in what they formely had and could legally lay Claim to, and that we do esteem all Judgments given against them, and all Surrenders made by a corrupt and perjured Party amongst them, null and void in Law ; and do hold and declare their old Charters, notwithstanding the new ones lately granted, to be good and valid ; and accordingly we do invite and incourage all honest Burgesses and Freemen to reassume the Rights and Priviledges, which by Vertue of the said old Charters belonged to their several and respective Corporations, and to deliver themselves from those late Parasites and Instruments of Tyranny set up to oppress them. Moreover, for the restoring the Kingdom to its Primitive Con- dition of Freedom and Safety, we will have the Corporation and Militia Acts repealed, and all Out-lawries of Treason against any Person whatsoever, upon the late pretended Protestant Plot, reversed ; and also all other Out-lawries, Banishments, Warrants, Judgments, Imprisonments, and Injurious Proceedings against any other Persons, upon any of the Penal Statutes made against Protestant Dissenters, made null and void. And we will have new Laws enacted for placing the Election of Sheriffs in the Free- holders of the several Counties, for settling the Militia in the several Shires, and for preventing all Military standing Forces, except what shall be raised and kept up by Authority and Con- sent of Parliament. And whereas several Gentlemen, and others, who have been worthy and zealous Asserters of the Protestant Interest, and Laws of the Kingdom, are now in Custody in divers Places 3fame0 3Dufee of ^onmoutlj* 195 within the Realm, upon most unjust Accusations, Pretences, Proceedings, and Judgments ; we do hereby further declare their said Imprisonments to be Illegal, and that in Case any Violence shall be offered to them, or any of them, we will revenge it to the utmost upon such of our Enemies as shall fall into our Hands. And whereas the said J. D. of Y. in Order to the expediting the Idolatrous and Bloody Designs of the Papists, the gratifying his own boundless Ambition after a Crown, and to hinder Inquiry into the Assassination of Arthur Earl of Effex, hath poisoned the late King, and thereby manifested his Ingratitude as well as Cruelty to the World, in murthering a Brother who had almost ruined himself to preserve and protect him from Punishment : We] do therefore further declare, That for the aforesaid Villanous and Unnatural Crime, and other his Crimes before mentioned, and in Pursuance of the Resolution of both Houses of Parliament, who voted to revenge the King's Death in Case he came to an untimely End, we will prosecute the said J. D. of Y, till we have brought him to suffer what the Law adjudged to be the Punishment of so execrable a Fact. And in a more particular Maner, his Grace the Duke of Mon- mouth, being sensible of the Barbarous and Horrid Parricide committed upon his Father, doth resolve to pursue the said J. D. of K as a mortal and bloody Enemy, and will endeavour as well with his own Hand, as by the Assistance of his Friends and the Law, to have Justice executed upon them. And the said James Duke of Monmouth, the new Head and Captain General of the Protestant Forces of this Kingdom, assembled for the End aforesaid, from the Generousness of his own Nature, and the Love he bears to these Nations, whose Welfare and Settlement he infinitely prefers to whatsoever may concern himself, doth not at present insist upon his Title ; but leaves the Determination thereof to the Wisdom, Justice, and Authority of a Parliament legally chosen, and acting with Freedom : And in the mean Time doth profess and declare by all that is Sacred, that he will, in Conjunction with the People of England, imploy all the Abilities bestowed upon him by God and Nature, for the Re-establishment and Preservation of the Protestant Reformed Religion in these Kingdoms, and for res- o 2 196 W$t Q&t&mn ^rangactiong* toring the Subjects of the same to a free Exercise thereof, in Opposition to Popery, and the consequences of it, Tyranny and Slavery. To the obtaining of which End, he doth hereby pro- mise and oblige himself to the People of England, to consent unto, and promote the passing into Laws all the Methods afore- said ; that it may never more be in the Power of any single Person on the Throne, to deprive the Subjects of their Rights, or subvert the Fundamental Laws of the Government designed for their Preservation. And whereas the Nobility, Gentry, and Commons of Scotland are now in Arms upon the like Motives and Inducements that we are, and in Prosecution of Ends agreable with ours ; We do therefore approve the Justice of their Cause, commend their Zeal and Courage, expecting their, and promising our Assistance, for carrying on that Glorious Work we are jointly engaged in ; being obliged, for avoiding Tediousness, to omit the recounting many Oppressions under which the Kingdom hath groaned ; and the giving a Deduction of the several Steps that have been taken for introducing of Popery and Tyranny: We think fit thereof to signifie, both to our Countrymen and Foreigners, that we intend a larger Testimony and Remonstrance of the Griev- ances, Persecutions, Cruelties, and Tyrannies we have of late layn under ; and therein a more full and particular Account of the unparalleird Crimes of the D. of Y. And we make our Appeal unto God, and all Protestant Kings, Princes, States, and People, concerning the Justice of our Cause, and the Necessity we are reduced unto of having our Recourse to Arms. And as we do beseech, require, and adjure all sincere Protestants and true Englishmen, to be assisting to us against the Enemies of the Gospel, Rights of the Nation, and Liberties of Mankind : So we are confident of obtaining the utmost Aid and Succour which they can yield us, with their Prayers, Persons, and Estates, for the Dethroning the said Tyrant, &c. nor do we doubt being justified, countenanced, and assisted by all Protestant Kings, Princes, and Commonwealths, who either regard the Gospel of Jesus Christ, or their own Interest : And above all, our Depen- dance and Trust is upon the Lord of Hosts, in whose Name we go forth, and to whom we commit our Cause and refer the Decision betwixt us and our Enemies in the Day of Battle. - harness 2Dufee of S^Ditmoutf). 197 Now let us play the Men for our People, and for the Cities of our God, and the Lord do that which seemeth good unto him. Thus, Reader, I have given you a Copy of the Duke of Mon- mouth's Declaration, (which was disperst in the West of England in the Year 1685.) But it not being the Part of an Historian to make Remarks, I have satisfied my self with barely in- serting, it leaving every Reader to make what Reflections on it he thinks fit. A brief A bstract of his True Speech. I repent in general of all my Sins, and am more particularly concerned for what Blood hath been spilt on my Account, and the rather, seeing the Issue is such as I fear will prove of fatal Consequence to the Reformed Protestant Religion. Instead of being counted Factious and Rebellious, the very opposing of Popery and Arbitrary Power, now arising and ap- pearing plain enough, would sufficiently have protected my Cause ; besides, several other most hainous and notorious Crimes, (such as the unhappy Fate of the Earl of Essex, and my Father of ever blessed Memory, and others now covered over with Jesuitical Policy) should have been detected and avenged. I have lived, and shall now die in the Faith of this, that God will work a Deliverance for his People, and then will be dis- covered the great and horrid, and scarcely to be parallelled Villanies our Enemies have been guilty of ; but now you see my Case is desperate, yet know that I die a MARTYR FOR THE PEOPLE, and shall rather pity the State, that their false and covetous Minds have brought themselves and me to ; than discover who are the Persons concerned in my Overthrow, and I heartily forgive all that have wronged me, even those that have been instrumental in my Fall, earnestly praying for their Souls. And I hope King James will shew himself to be of his Bro- ther's Blood, and extend his Mercy to my Children, even as he was wont to his greatest Enemies, they being not capable to act, and therefore not conscious of any Offence against the Govern- ment. 198 %$t (Mmttn %van$miow. His ELEGY. Come, Mortals, come, now set yourselves to weep, Is not your Glorious M — gone to sleep ? Send us some Tears, you Indians, from your Shoa r, For it's our Grief that we can mourn no more. We want some Mourners from the utmost Coast Of all the Earth, that Grief may not be lost. When Britain hath sat down and mourn'd her Fill, She ought to send for other Mourners still. Created Things, come set your selves to mourn, Since Lovely M from the World is torn. Should you not mourn, and tell your Children so, That Ages hence may mourn and sorrow too, ? Cause we have lost so great a Good as this, Who was our Flow'r, and mourning Europe's Bliss ? The Sun did mourn the Morning of that Day, And with the Clouds of Darkness did array His Glorious Face, that Mortals might not see His Royal Rays, while they did murther thee. O Lovely M , Glory of our Land, Who for God's Word did like a Pillar stand. All Things but Devils seemed then to weep, Nor could the Earth almost in Silence keep. Methought all joy would vanish from the Earth, And Pleasantness would stop with M- y s Breath. Methought the Sun might now be angry grown, And would no more on Earth be seen or known. We fear'd the Heavens now disturbed were, And for the Earth would take no further Care. All good Men griev'd to see that fatal blow, Whilst floods of Tears did from the Heavens flow. But that black Blow, instead of proving Three, Like Russell's Fate, Five Bloody Stroaks they see. Ye Ages all, let this recorded be, And let all Mankind, M , mourn for thee. Could we but draw those blessed Looks of his, As when we saw him walking hence to Bliss, 3|ameg 2Dufce of 9£onmoutIj> 199 When from the Tower he did the Hill ascend, Where Troops of Angels did his Soul attend ; One would have thought, to see him in that Throng, That he to Bliss already did belong. His Countenance all others did out-shine, And made his very Foes to Grief incline. No sooner was his Soul arriv'd in Bliss, Where he receiv'd a better Crown for this ; Than Phoebus and the Earth began to shine, And pleasant Looks towards us do incline. The Clouds and Tears were wip'd from Heaven's Face, And Glorious Brightness did again take Place. Now, Happy Soul, we leave thee to thy Rest, To live in Joys that cannot be exprest. Argile and the Duke of Monmouth being now both safe in their Graves, King James was so pufft up with a petty Victory over a few Clubmen, and so wrapt up with a Conceit, that he had now conquered the whole Nation, (so that now believing himself impregnable) he resolves to be reveng'd upon the Western People for siding with his Capital Enemy Monmouth^ and to that purpose sends down his Executioner in Ordinary, Jeffreys, not to decimate according to the Heathen Way of Mercy, but with the Beesom of his Cruelties, to sweep the Country before him, and to depopulate instead of Punishment, at which Time Acquaintance or Relation of any that fell in the Field, with a slender Circumstance tack'd to either, was a Crime sufficient for the extirpation of the Family. And Young and Old were hang'd by Clusters, as if the Chief Justice had designed to raise the Price of Halters ; besides the great Number of those that upon bare Suspicion were transported beyond Sea, and there sold for Slaves, and the Purchase-Money given away to satisfy the Hunger of needy Papists. — After- Ages will read with Astonishment the barbarous Usage of those poor People ; of which among many Instances, this one may seem sufficient, whereby to take the Dimensions of all the rest : That when the Sister of the two Hewlings hung upon the Chief Justice's Coach, imploring Mercy on the behalf of her Brothers, the merciless Judge, to make her let go, caus'd the Coach-man 200 W$z WLtmvn ^rangactfong* to cut her Hands and Fingers with the Lash of his Whip. Nor would he allow the Respite of the Execution but for two Days, tho' the Sister with Tears in her Eyes offered a Hundred Pounds for so small a Favour. And whoever sheltered any of those forlorn Creatures, were hurried to the Slaughter- house with the same inexecrable Outrage, without any Con- sideration either of Age or Sex ; Witness the Execution of the Lady Lisle at Winchester. As for Argile and the Duke, tho' they might die pitied, yet in Regard they had declared open Hostility, it was no more than they were to expect upon ill Success. We shall now, to compleat our Western Martyrology, (and that we may not be too tedious) proceed to give the particular Cases of those that were condemned and executed in the WEST, with their Christian Behaviour and Dying-Speeches, as their plain Country Friends have preserved 'em. The Dying-Speech and Behaviour of Mr. Matth. Bragg. And we begin with Mr. Matthew Bragg,who was a Gentleman, and descended from an Ancient and Good Family; he was bred an Attorney, in which he practised the Law : His Case being this, he happened to be upon the Road riding home to his House, being come from a Gentleman's House for whom he kept courts. He, as before, being met with by a Party of Horse belonging to the Duke of Momnouth, who were going to search the House of a Roman Catholick for Arms, who lived two or three Miles from the Place they met him, they required him to go with them, and show them the way, he knowing the Country better than they did ; he desired to be excused, telling them, It was none of his Business, and besides had no . Arms. But his Excuses signified nothing, they forced him amongst them, where they went ; when being come, a Party enter'd the House 5 and searcht it : Mr. Bragg never dismounted, they being then satisfied, took him along with them to Chard, where then the 9t£r* S^attf)* ©raffs:. 201 Duke of Monmouth was. Being there, after having set up his Horse where he used to do, often having Occasion there, he was tampered with to engage in the Design, but he refused it ; but the next Morning made haste out of Town, not seeing the Duke at all ; calling for his Horse, it was told him, That it was seized for the Duke's Service. So then he took his Cane and Gloves, and walked to his own House, which was about five or six Miles, and was no more concerned in the Affair, than that after the Duke's Defeat at Kings-Sedge-Moore, some busie Person in- formeth, and requireth a Warrant from a Justice of Peace for the said Mr. Bragg,who obliged himself to enter into a Recognizance to appear at the next Assizes ; the said Justice accounting the Matter in itself but trivial ; and indeed all Men did judge him out of Danger. At Dorchester he appeared in Court to discharge his Bail, on which he was presently committed, and the next Day being Arraigned, pleading Not Guilty, put himself on the Trial of God and his Country, which found him and 28 more of 30 Guilty ; the Lord Chief Justice often saying, If any Lawyer or Parson came under his Inspection, they should not escape; the Evidence against him was the Roman Catholick, whose House was searcht, and a Woman of ill Fame, to whom the L. Chief Justice was wonderfully kind ; but his Evidence, which were more than Twenty, to prove his Innocence, signified nothing, the Jury being well instructed by my Lord Chief Justice. Being thus found Guilty, Sentence was presently pronounced, and Execution awarded, notwithstanding all the Interest that was made for him, as before recited. Thus being condemned on Saturday, and ordered to be ex- ecuted on Monday, he spent the Residue of his little Time very devoutly, and much becoming a good Christian, and a true Protestant of the Church of England, all which availed nothing with this Protestant Judge. He was frequently visited by a worthy Divine of the Church of England, who spent much Time with him, and received great Satisfaction from him. The said Divine told me, That his Deportment, Behaviour, and Converse was so much like an extraordinary Christian, that he could not in the least doubt but this violent Passage would put him into the Fruition of Happiness. He wisht and de- sired a little longer Time, out of no other Design, but thoroughly 202 W$t aaie^tern Crartgacttongf* to repent of his Sins, and make himself more sensible of, and fit for to receive the Inheritance that is prepared for those that continue in well-doing to the End. When he came to the Place of Execution with great Courage and Resolution, being, as he said, Prepared for Death, he behaved himself very gravely and devoutly.. Being asked, when he was on the Ladder, Whether he was not sorry for his being concerned in the Rebellion ; He replied, That he knew of none that he was guilty ofj and prayed them not to trouble him ; adding, He was not the first that was martyr* dj he was so much a Christian as to forgive his Enemies. And after some private Devotions he suddenly was translated, as we have all Hopes to believe, from Earth to Heaven. The only Favour of this Protestant Judge was, to give his Body to his Friends, in Order to its Interment amongst his Ancestors. The Behaviour of Mr. Smith, Constable of Chard- stock. Another Eminent Person that suffered with him at the same Time and Place, was one Mr. Smith, who was Constable of Chardstock, who having some Monies in his Hands that belonged to the Militia, which came to the Knowledge of some of the Duke's Friends, they obliged him to deliver it to them, which he was forced to deliver ; and for this was indicted for High-Trea- son, in assisting the Duke of Monmouth. To which he pleaded Not Guilty. The Evidence against him were the same with those that had been against Mr. Bragg. The said Mr. Smith informed the Court and the Jury, what little Credit ought to be given to the Evidence. The Lord Chief Justice thundered at him, saying, Thou Villain, methinks I see thee already with a Halter about thy Neck; thou impudent Rebel, to challe?ige these Evidences that are for the King. To which the Prisoner re- plied very boldly, My Lord, I now see which way I ant going, and right or wrong I must die j but this I co?nfo?'t my self with, That your Lordship can only destroy 7ny Body j it is out of your Power to touch my soul. God forgive your Rashness; pray, my 91£r* »>mtti)* 203 Lord, know it is not a small Matter you are about, the Blood of Man is more precious than the whole World. And then was stopped from saying any more. The Evidences being heard, a strict Charge was given the jury about him. To be short, the Jury brought him in Guilty; so that he with the rest received the Sentence of Death all together, and were executed on Mon- day ; but by particular Order from my Lord, he was ordered to be first executed. The Day being come for Execution, being Monday, he with a Courage undaunted, was brought to the Place, where with Christian Exhortations to his Brethren that suffered with him, he was ordered to prepare, being the first to be executed, where he spake as followeth : Christian Friends, I am now, as you see, launching into eternity j so that it may be expected I should speak something before I leave this miserable World, and pass through those Sufferings, which are dreadful to Flesh and Blood; which indeed shall be but little, because I long to be before a Just Judge, where I must give an Account, not only for the Occasion of my Sufferings now, but for Sins long unrepented of, which iiideed hath brought me to this dismal Place and shameful Death. And truly, dear Country -men, having ransacked my Soul, I cannot find my small concern with the Duke of Monmouth, doth deserve this heavy Judgment on me; but I know, as I said before, it is for Sins long unrepented of I die in Charity with all Men; I desire of all you to bear me Witness, I die a true Professor of the Church #/" England; be- seeching the Lord still to stand up in the Defe7ice of it. God for- give my passionate Judge, and cruel and hasty Jury ; God forgive them, they know not what they have done. God bless the King; and though his Judges had no Mercy on me, 1 wish he 7nay find Mercy when he standeth most in Need of it; Make him, O Lord, a tiursing Father to the Church; let Mercy flow abundantly from him, if it be thy Will, to those poor Prisoners, to be hereafter tried; and, Lord, if it be thy Holy Will, stop this issue of Christian Blood, a?td let my guiltless Blood be the last spilt on this account. Gentle7iie7i all, fare well, fare well all the things of the World : Then singing some few Verses of a Psalm, and putting up some private Ejaculations to himself; said, O Lord, into thy Hands I commend my Spirit, and so submitted to the Executioner, Sept. 7. 1685. 204 %ty Wlt&tzvn %x&n&mion&. The Behaviour and Dying-Speech of Mr. Joseph Speed of Culliton. At the same Time and Place, as he came near the Place of iris Execution, he spying his Country man and Friend, called him, and said, I am glad to see you here now, because I am not known in these Parts ; being answered by his Friend, I am sorry to see you in this Condition : He replies, It is the best Day I ever saw ; I thank God I have not led my Life as Unchristian- like as many have done, having since the Years of 16 always had the Checks of Conscience on me, which made me to avoid many gross and grievous Sins ; my Course of Life hath been well known to you, yet I cannot Justine my self ; all Men err. I have not been the least of Sinners, therefore cannot excuse myself; but since my Confinement I have received so great Comfort, in some Assurance of the Pardon of my Sins, that I can now say, I am willing to die, to be dissolved, and to be with Christ, and say to Death, Where is thy Sting f And to Grave, Where is thy Victory? Being asked by some rude Soldiers, Whether he was not sorry for the Rebellion he was found guilty of? He couragiously replied, If you call it a Rebellion, I assure you I had no sinister Ends in being concerned ; for my whole Design in taking up Arms under the Duke of Monmouth, was to fight for the Protestant Religion, which my own Conscience dictated me to, and which the said Duke declared for, and had, I think, a lawful Call and Warrant for so doing, and do not question, that if I have committed any Sin in it, but that it is pardoned ; Pray, Mr. Sheriff, let me be troubled no more in an- swering of Questions, but give me Leave to prepare my self (those few Minutes I have left) for another World, and go to my Jesus, who is ready to receive me : Then calling to his Friend, who stood very near him, said, My dear Friend, you know I have a dear Wife and Children, who will find me wanting, being some- what incumbered in the World, let me desire you as a Dying Man, to see that she be not abused ; and as for my poor Chil- dren, I hope the Father of Heaven will take Care of them, and give them Grace to be dutiful to their distressed Mother ; and so with my Dying love to all my Friends, when you see them, I 9t£t\ 3Jof)n Sprage* 205 take Leave of you, and them, and all the World, desiring your Christian Prayers for me to the last Moment ; then repeating some Sentences of Scripture, as, Colosstans, chap. 3. 5. i, 2, If you then, &c. and praying very fervently, said, I thank God I have Satisfaction; I am ready and willing to suffer Shame for his Name : And so pouring fourth some private Ejaculations to himself, and lifting up his Hands, the Executioner did his Office : The Soldiers then present said, They never before were so taken with a Dying Man's Speech; his Courage and Christian- like Resolution, caused many violent Men against the Prisoners.* to repent of their Tyranny towards them ; some of whom in a short Time died full of Horror : And thus fell this good Man, a true Protestant, and one that held out to the End. An Account of those that Suffered at Bridport and Lyme. At Bridport one John Sprage, who was a very good Man, and behaved himself with a great deal of Christian-like Courage to the End : His Speech and his Devotions, &*c. must be omitted, not being possible to take them, by Reason of the Rudeness, 6°r. and the Shortness of the Time allowed him by the Soldiers. With Mr. John Sprage there were executed Twelve in the County of Dorset. Mr. John Sprage of Lyme, a Man more fit to die, than he that condemned him was fit to live : He was a zealous Christian, and a Man that in a Manner lived in Heaven while on Earth ; he was but of an ordinary Estate in this World ; But to be short, his Praise, his Worth, his Fame will never die in those Places where known ; he went about doing good, even in his worldly Employments, as I have been credibly informed ; hardly any thing coming that Way, but what his Spiritual Meditations were upon. He was apprehended near Salisbury, brought to Dorchester, where I saw him several Times, and was conversant with him before his Trial ; he carried himself very moderately to all ; some of divers Principles in Matters of 206 %l)t WLt&tmx Crangactiong. Religion, he continually prayed with them, advising and instruct- ing them to those holy Duties which were necessary to Salva- tion. Being asked, how he could endure those Hardships he had undergone since his being taken ? Says he, If this be all, "'tis not so much ; but my Friend,, if yon were to take a Journey in those Ways you were 7tot acquainted with, you would \I hope) desire Advice from those that had formerly used those Ways, or lived near by them: Yes, says he : Then said^he, The Ways of Affliction which I have lately travelled in, I had Advice many a Time from a M mister, who hath often told his Congregation of the Troublesomness of the Road, and of the Difficulty of getting through; and hath given me, and Hundreds of others to understand the Pitts a7id Stones in the Way, and how to avoid them; he has been a Man tised to these Roads many Years; I have taken his Advice ; I am got thus far on comfortably, and I trust shall do so to the End; I am not afraid to fight a Duel with Death, if so it must be : Now I thank God I can truly say, O Death where is thy Sting? And O Grave, where is thy Victory / Two" or three Days after their Sentence, they were drawn to Execution, but were very rudely and approbriously dealt with, to the Shame of those that then had the Charge over them ; their Rigor unto them was more like Turks than Christians. But to conclude, being come to the Place of Execution, he prayed very devoutly with them all, but by the Rudeness of the Guards, there could be no Copy taken to be said to be true : All of them died very cou- ragious, especially this Stout Christian Champion, who spake to them in these Words, (looking on the Soldiers) saying, Little do you think that this very Body of mine, which you are 7iow come to see cut in Pieces, will one Day rise tip in Judgment against you, and be your Accuser, for your Delight in spilling of Chris- tian Blood; the Heathens have far more Mercy ; O 'tis sad, when England must out-strip Infidels and Pagans 4 But pray take Notice, don't think that I am not in Charity with you; I a??i so far, that I forgive you and all the World; and do desire the God of Mercies to forgive you, and open your Hearts, and turn you from Darkness to Light, and from the Power of Satan to the Lord Jesus Christ ; and so FareweL I a?n going out of the Power of you all ; I have no Dependence but upon my Colonel l£olme0. 207 Blessed Redeemer, to whom I commit 7ny dear Wife and Children and all the World. The next Place was Lyme, where many of Note died, par- ticularly Col. Holmes, who was the first of those there executed, near the same Place where they landed, when they came a-Shoar with the Duke of Monmouth, being brought to the Place after some Difficulty ; for the Horses that were first put into the Sledge would not stir, which obliged those concerned to get others, which they did from the Coachman, who had that Morn- ing brought them to Town ; when they were put into the Sledge, they broke it in Pieces, which caused the Prisoners to go on foot to the Place of Execution ; where being come, as I told you before, the Colonel began thus at the Foot of the Ladder ; he sat down with an Aspect altogether void of Fear, but on the contrary with a kind of smiling Countenance, so began to speak to the Spectators to this Purpose, That he would give them an Account of his first Undertaking in the Design, which was long before in London; for there he agreed to stand by, and assist the D. of Momnouth, when Opportunity offered ; in Order to which he went to Holland with him, and there continued until this Expedition, in which God had thought fit to frustrate his and other good Mens Expectations : He believed the Protestant Religion was bleeding, and in a Step towards Extirpation and, therefore he with these his Brethren that were to suffer with him, and Thousands more, had adventured their Lives and their All to save it ; but God Almighty had not appo inted 'em to be the Instruments in so glorious a Work ; yet notwithstanding he did verily believe, and doubted not, but that God would make Use of others, that should meet with better Success, tho' the Way or Means was not yet visible, but of this he did not doubt : He also was satisfied of the Duke's Title, so that Matter did not afflict him on Account of his engaging on his Score : And going on further with a Discourse of this Nature, he was asked by a Person, Why he did not pray for the King? He with a smiling Countenance answered, / am sorry you do not yet un- derstand the Difference between Speaking and Praying; And having ended his Discourse, he then prepared himself by Prayer for his Dissolution, which was very Devout and Pious for half an Hour ; which was as follows : 208 ^t Wlt0tm\ ^rangacttons* Colonel Holme's Last Prayer. Most Glorious, most Great, and most Merciful God, there is none in Heaven or in Earth that is like unto thee ; Heaven is thy Throne, and the Earth is thy Footstool ; who shall say unto thee, What doest thou? Here we are poor deplorable Creatures come to offer up our last Prayers and Services unto thee ; we beseech thy Favourable Ear to our Prayers, and the Comfort of thy Holy. Spirit, at this Time ; we praise and magnifie thy Name, for all the Dispensations of thy Providence towards us, especially for this thy Providence, in bringing us to this Place, and at this Time, to suffer Shame for thy Name : Help and assist all of us to submit to thy Will patiently. Pardon all our Sins, remove them out of thy Presence as far as the East is from the West, and accept of us in the Merits of thy Son Jesus Christ ; thou who art the Searcher of Hearts, and Trier of Reins, let there not at the Moment of Death be the least Spark of Sin indwelling in us, nor the Strivings of Flesh and Blood, that may hinder us from a joyful Passage unto thee : Give us Patience also under these Sufferings, and a Deliverance to all others from undergo- ing them, and in thy good Time work a Deliverance for poor England, let thy Gospel yet flourish among them, hasten the downfal of Antichrist, we trust the Time is come ; prevent, O Lord, this Effusion of Christian Blood ; and if it be thy Will, let this be the last : Lord, bless this Town, let them from the highest to the lowest set the Fear of God before their Eyes : Bless all sorts and conditions of Men in all Ranks and Qualities, pardon all their Sins, give them all true repentance, and the Grace of thy Holy Spirit ; fit and prepare us for the chearful Fulfilling of thy Holy Will ; let the Comforter be still with us ; be merciful to all our Friends, and Relations, and Acquaintance ; forgive our Enemies, accept of our Thankfulness for all the Mercies and Favours afforded us, and hear, and graciously answer us in these our Requests, and what else thou knowest needful and expedient for us, and all for our Redeemer the Lord Jesus Christ his Sake ; who died for us, that we might reign with him for ever and ever 5 to whom with thee and thy Blessed Spirit of Grace be ascribed, as is most due, all Honour, Glory, and Praise, both now and for ever. Colonel ^olme& 209 After having ended his prayer, he took Occasion to speak to his suffering Brethren, taking a solemn Leave of them, encou- raging them to hold out to the End, and not to waver, observing that this being a Glorious Sun-shining Day, I doubt not, though our Breakfast be sharp and bitter, it will prepare us, and make us meet for a comfortable Supper, with our God and Saviour, where all Sin and Sorrow shall be wiped away ; so embracing each of 'em, and kissing of 'em, told the Sheriff, You see I am imperfect, only one Arm, I shall want Assistance to help me upon this Tragical Stage; which was presently done, and Ex- ecution suddenly followed. He with Eleven more were brought from Dorchester to Lyme, Six in a Coach, and Six in a Cart ; as he was drawn through the Town, he chearfully beholding the People, advised them not to be discouraged at their severe Deaths ; for that though it was their hard Fortunes to lose the Day in so good a Cause, yet he questioned not but it would be revived again, and by such Means as he nor they could not imagine ; God, I hope and trust, will never let this Nation to fall into Popery. Being brought to the Inn where they stopped near two Hours, until the Butchers had prepared every Thing for the Slaughter, they were visited by a very Worthy Divine, and Vicar of that Town, who offered them those Spiritual Helps, as usual in those Occasions, which some of them embraced, and others not ; their Principles being different from the Church of England. The Jaylor speaking to Colonel Holmes to knock off his Irons, he said, Great Men of State wear Chains, and 'tis accounted for their Honour, but though there is a vast Difference betwixt those Golden ones and mine, yet I take mine to be more honourable, as that good Apostle said, he accounted it an Honour to suffer Shame for his Master's Name ; the Sledge being in Readiness they prepared to enter it ; but alas ! Who should draw such Men to Execu- tion ? Though Men were so bloody, the very Beasts refused to draw them ; and instead of going forward, they went backwards, and could by no Means make them do it, which so inraged some Persons, that they took the Coach-Horses out of the Coach, and placed them to the Sledge ; but presently the Sledge broke in Pieces ; then spake this worthy good Man : Pray, Gentlemen, you see all your strivings will not do to draw us to P 210 %ty Wltgmn %van$attion$. Execution, I verily believe there is more in it than you are aware of ; pray read about the Prophet, that went out of God's Way, his Beast saw that he could not. Give us Leave, and we will walk to the Place ; being there come, the Colonel prepared first to mount that Tragical Stage, the Heads of his Speech you have before ; imb racing his Fellow- Sufferers, and kissing them, and giving them some ghostly Com- forts ; he desired Help of the Sheriff to go up the Ladder, having* but One Arm, and the Gallows higher than ordinary, which was granted : And in a short Time after the Executioner did his Office. Col. Holmes in his Prayer not mentioning the King, he was charged as before ; to which he replied, He prayed for him in general, praying for all Mankind. Thus fell the Valiant and good Christian, Col. Holmes j his Dying- Words we have now found come to pass ; he was much lamented by all that saw him, except by some, that, 'tis feared, are delivered up to a seared Conscience. Now follows the Execution of Mr. Sam. Larke. Mr. Sampson Larke, who was a very eminent, pious Man, and had lived in that Town but little before many Years ; he was there well acquainted, and all People that knew him had a Value for him, behaving himself with that Humility and Cir- cumspection, as no Body could have any other Occasion but to value him : He designed to have spoken somewhat on a Portion of Scripture, and was beginning, having mentioned the Place he intended to speak upon, but was interrupted, and told, the Work of the Day being great, they should want Time. So then he stopt, and replied, He could make Application where he should not meet with interruption j And so applied himself to Prayer, which he performed with great Devotion and Zeal for a Quarter of an Hour, to the great Satisfaction of the Auditors ; and so taking Leave of his suffering Brethren, he mounted the Stage, which was to be the last Act he made in this World ; being on the Ladder, he saw some of his Friends and Neighbours weeping and mourning for him, to whom he spake, Pray weep 9$r* %ylzv. 211 not for me, I am going to a Place of Bliss and Happiness, wherefore pray repair to your Houses, and e'er you get thither, I doubt not but I shall be happy with my God and Saviour, where all Tears shall be wiped away, and nothing shall remain but Hallelujahs to all Eternity. There was also Mr. William Hew ling of London,, a young Gentleman under Twenty, who came over with the Duke of Monmouth, he seemed to be in a calm and composed Frame of Spirit, and with a great deal of Courage and Seriousness he behaved himself. There is already something said of his Con- verse and Discourse, which amongst others is Printed ; therefore we shall say nothing more of him, but that in all Manner ot Appearance he died a good Christian, a true Protestant, and doubtless now enjoys the Benefit of it. There were several worthy Gentlemen more there executed, viz. Mr. Chris toph Battiscomb, Dr. Temple, Capt. Madders, Captain Matthews, Captain Kid, &c. in all Twelve, who all of them died with that Courage and Resolution as became Christians, and such who eminently had adventured their Lives and Fortunes in Defence of what was most dear to them ; and namely our Religion, which though God did not think fit to defend and secure it, yet in his Wisdom we hope it will be in some Measure secured by other Instruments, the Glory of the same being only due to him. So that now leaving this Place, we proceed to other Parts of the Country, where with the like Butchery were only Five executed, amongst whom was one Mr. Tyler of Bristol, who had had Command in the Duke's Army, where he hehaved himself very stoutly to the last ; after the Army was dispersed, he among others was taken, received Sentence of Death at Dorchester, and here brought for the Completion of the same, and from thence we hope was translated to Heaven. He spent his Time between the Sentence and Execution very devoutly, in confirming and strengthening those that were to be his Fellow-Sufferers ; and made it his Business to bring them to a Willingness to submit to, and a Preparedness for Death : The Day being come, and he brought to the Place of Execution, he thus spoke, My Friends, you see I am now on the Brink of Eternity, and in a few Minutes shall be but Clay ; you expect I should say something, as is usual in such Cases, as to the Matter of Fact I die for, it P2 212 %%t Mmtvn Crangacttong* doth not much trouble me, knowing to my self the Ends for which I engaged myself with the Duke of Monmouth were both good and honourable. Here being stopped, and not suffered to pro- ceed further, he then comforted his Fellow-sufferers, desiring them to join with him in singing an Hymn, which he himself Composed for the Occasion as follows : A HYfyfN made by Mr. Joseph Tyler, a little before his Execution. O Lord, how Glorious is thy Grace, And wondrous large thy Love ; At such a dreadful Time and Place, To such as faithful prove ! 2. If thou wilt have thy Glory hence, Though a shameful Death we die, We bless thee for this Providence, To all Eternity. 3- Let these Spectators see thy Grace In thy poor Servants shine ; While we by Faith behold thy Face In that bless'd Son of thine. 4. Though Men our Bodies may abuse. Christ took our Souls to Rest ; Till he brings forth the joyful News, Ye are my Father's Blest, 5- Appear for those that plead thy Cause, Preserve them in the Way, Who own King Jesus and his Laws, And dare not but obey. 9£c. »>ampgon Harfee. 213 6. O God confound our cruel Foes, Let Babylon come down ; Let England's King be one of them Shall raze her to the Ground. 7- Through Christ we yield our Souls to thee, Accept us on his Score ; That where he is, there we may be, To praise thee ever more. After the Hymn sung he prayed devoutly for half an Hour ; after Prayer he gave great Satisfaction to all present of his Assurance of Heaven, had many weeping Eyes for him, and was much lamented in the Town, though a Stranger to the Place ; so unbuttoning himself, said to the Executioner, I fear not what Man can do unto mej I pray thee do thy Work in Mercy, for I forgive thee with all my Heart, and I also pray to God to forgive theej don't mangle my Body too muchj and so lifting up his Hands to Heaven, the Executioner did his Office. There was also one William Cox that died with him, who also died very couragiously, despising the Shame, in Hopes and Expectation of a future better Estate. He and his two Sons were some of the first that came to the Duke of Mon- mouth, and all taken, and all condemned together : The Father only suffered, the Sons by Providence were preserved. When he was going to Execution he desired Leave to see his Sons, then in another Prison in the Town, to whom he gave his Blessing; and though he was going to be executed, yet had that Satisfaction to hope that God would preserve them, which was so. Some further Passages relating to Mr. Sampson Larke, with his Prayer at the same Time and Place when Executed. Immediately after Col. Holmes was executed, this good Man was ordered to prepare to follow ; accordingly going to deliver 214 %$t WLtgmn Crangactfong* some few Words to the People, some whereof were formerly of his Congregation, but being told he could not expect much Time, because it was so late, and 'so many to be executed after him; so he suddenly concluded, and said, / will now speak a few words to him which I am sure will hear me. And so began his Prayer as followeth : Blessed Lord God, we thine unworthy Creatures now here before thee, cannot but acknowledge from the Bottom of our Hearts o'ur own unworthiness ; we must confess we have been grievous Sinners, and have brought forth the evil Fruit of it in our Lives, to the great Dishonour of thy Name, for which we have deserved thy heavy Wrath and Indignation to be poured forth upon us, not only in this Life, but in that which is to come. O let us bless God for our Suffering and Afflictions, as well as for our Mercies, we bless thee in particular for this; O sanctifie it to us ; let us be effectually convinced of the Vanity of the World, and of our own Sinfulness by Nature and Practice* and to see that to be Sin which we never saw before ; O Lord* make us sensible of the absolute Necessity of the Righteousness of Christ to justifie us, and let him be now made much more dear and precious to our Souls than ever, that so we may be wrought into a more heavenly Frame, and raised to a higher Degree of Spirituality, and so made more meek and humble ; and let us judge charitably of others, that differ from us in Opinion and Judgment. And now, O Lord, though by thy most righteous Judgment we most justly deserve these Sufferings, and such an ignominious Death, for our Sins against thee, not for Treasons against the Kingdom, let us be in a Preparedness for it. Pardon all our Sins, help us quietly to submit to thy holy will ; speak Peace to all our Souls. Look in Mercy, O Lord, on this poor Nation, especially on this Town, and every par- ticular Person in it; let them all mind those Things which concern their Peace, before they are hid from their Eyes. Comfort my dear and distressed Wife, be a Husband unto her, deliver her out of the Paw of the Lion, and the Paws of the Bear. Look upon all thy poor afflicted Ones, all Prisoners and Captives, work Deliverance for them if thou seest it good ; but thy Will be done on Earth as it is in Heaven. And now, Lord, with humble Meekness and submission I submit to thy Will, 9l£r* £>ampston Hacfee. 215 depending upon the Merits of my Saviour, to whom with thy Blessed Self and Spirit be ascribed all Honour and Praise both now and for ever. Amen. Then mounting the Ladder, he called to some of the Town who weeped for him,. but were at some Distance, Go Home to your own Houses, pray do not weep for me, and before you get up yonder Hill, I shall be with my Heavenly Father in Fulness of Joy and Pleasure for ever more. And so advising those before him to leave off those cruel Sentiments they had taken of him, besides some heavenly Discourses with some of his Friends, he was turned off, to the great Grief of the good People of the Town, especially those of his own Congregation. To give him nothing but his Due, he was a Man mighty charitable, relieving and visiting the Poor and Needy, Preached in Season and out of Season, and made it his Business to go about doing good, and to put poor Souls in a Way for eternal Life ; he was an Old Christian, as well as Aged in Years ; he was a general Loss, especially to his dear and tender Wife : But all our Losses are nothing to be compared to that Glory that he now enjoys. Mr. Sampson Larke's Letter to a Friend just before his Execution. My dear Friend, I am ready to be offered, and the Time of my Departure is at hand ; I have through Grace fought a good Fight, have finished my Course, have kept the Faith, and am in Hopes of the Crown of Righteousness prepared for me, and all God's faithful Ones : The Experiences I have had of the Promises, hath given me comfortable Hopes that he will carry me to the full End of my Journey, with his Name, and that Truth of his, which I have made Profession of. My great Crime is for my being a Preacher of the Gospel, and here I am to be made a Sacrifice, where I have mostly preached Christ's Gospel. I think my Judges have devised this punish- ment for my Hurt, but I trust God will turn it to my Good ; the great Trouble I have is for those good Hearts that I must leave behind me : but this is my Comfort, knowing that all such as fear God, he will be a Father to them. My dear Wife is greatly troubled, but through Mercy much supported, and 216 %ty aoiegtem Crangacttong* something quieted ; if any of you have Opportunity to give her Help, I hope you will do it. As for our confessing our selves Guilty, it was expressly as to Matter of Fact, and not of Form ; and this I did with some Freedom, and the rather, because all my worthy Brethren that went before me took that Way, and the many Ways having been used to have a further Discov'ery, yet nothing of that Kind by any but only by Captain Jones. Since our Sentence, some wretched Men have been with us, to draw from us a Confession of our being Rebels, that we might have their Absolution. I bless God, he hath hitherto helped me to be faithful, and I hope he will not leave me in the most needful Time. I must conclude, being ready to be called away ; my dear Love to all my Christian Friends, and especially those in the Goal. The Lord be with you all, Amen. Your dying Friend, in Hopes of Eternal Life, through Jesus Christ, Amen. Sampson Larke. From the House of my blessed Bondage in Dorchester ; Septemb. 7. 1685. An Account of those Executed at Sherborn. At Sherborn, in the same County, were executed Twelve, who all died couragiously, especially one Mr. Glisson of Yeoval, in the County of Somerset, his extraordinary Deportment and Carriage at the Place of Execution, was so very considerable, as gave great Satisfaction to his Friends, and Amazement to his Enemies. He declared to the World that he was a true Protestant, and had not ingaged with the Duke of Monmouth, but judged it high Time to stand up for the Defence of the same, though God Almighty had thought fit to frustrate his Designs, and to bring him to that Place to Seal the same with his Blood. Also John Savage, and Richard Hall, of Culliton, in the County of Devon, suffered at the same Time and Place ; in their particular Conversation they valued those most that they saw most of Piety in, and pitied others that they saw not so well prepared ; saying, that the Remembrance of our Vanity 9t£r« 3|ol)n »>pntffue. 217 may cause Compassion towards such as were in such a Con- dition ; exhorting all to be serious, and to consider their latter End, which deserved the greatest Attention of Mind ; the Way to die comfortably, being to prepare for it seriously ; and if God should miraculously preserve us from this Death now before our Eyes, it should be the Duty of us all to spend the remaining Part of our Time, in such a Manner as now, when we see Death just at the Door. At the Hour of Execution their Chearfulness and Comfort was much increased, saying, Now the Will of God will be done, and he hath most certainly chosen that for us which is best; with many other such like Christian Expressions, too tedious here to be inserted, because we design to keep to our first Intentions, and not to swell this Treatise too big. Upon the whole, after they had with much Earnestness recommended their Souls to the All-wise God by Prayer, they all with much Content and Satisfaction submitted themselves to the Execu- tioner, not doubting of a happy Translation, and accordingly were executed and quartered as before ; the rest of the Execu- tions in this County, as at Weymouth, Pool, Shafton, Wimborne, &c.,not being there, we shall pass over, and only give you particular Touches, which we saw to our perfect, Knowledge ; and so we return to Culliton in the County of Devon, where John Sprague and William Clegg, both of that Town, were condemned at Exon, and there brought to be executed. Before they were brought into the Place, a Messenger came from the Prisoner's with a Request to the Vicar of the Parish, to desire his Com- pany and Assistance in this their Extremity, and to administer those Spiritual Helps that were suitable to Men in their Circum- stances. Accordingly the said Minister came very readily, and did demand of them, What they had to desire of him? . The dying Persons answered, They desired his Prayers. Accordingly he prayed with them a considerable Space of Time. And after that he asked of them several Qustions, for to give him and the World Satisfaction of the prepared Condition they were in, in Order to their launching into Eternity, especially about the Doc- trine of Non-resistance. John Sprague very soberly and mode- rately replied, but whether satisfactory or not, we leave to the Reader ; He believed that no Christian ought to resist a lawful Power j but the Case being between Popery and Protestantism, 218 %^t CLflle0tem ^ratigactions* altered the Matter; and the latter being in Danger, he believed that it was lawful for him to do what he did, though God in his Providence had thought fit to bring him to this Place of Execution. After reading a Chapter out of the Corinthians, and singing a Psalm suitable to the Occasion, he very vehemently and fervently recommended his Soul to the All-wise God by Prayer for near half an Hour, to the great Satisfaction of all that heard him ; then his Wife and Children coming to him, weeping bitterly, he imbraced them in his Arms, saying, Weep not for me, but weep for your selves, and for your Sins, for that he had that quiet Satisfaction, that he was only going to be translated i7tto a State of Bliss and Happiness, where he should sin and sorrow no more, but that all Tears should be wiped away, wishing them to be diligent in the Service of God. Then recommending his Wife and Children to the Protection of the Almighty God, who had pro?7tised to be Husband to the Widow, and a Father to the Fatherless, who was faithful and able to make up their Loss in him, in that which should be better for them than he could be; desiring God to be a Refuge for them to fly to for Security and Preservation from the Troubles that seemed to threaten this poor Nation ; the which if they did conscientiously perform, though Death here made a Separation, he doubted not of 7neeting them in Heaven at last. And so the Executioner did his Office. During which Time his Brother- Sufferer, William Clegg, was all the Time on his Knees, praying to himself with a seeming Zeal ; suddenly after which, his Time being come to follow his Brother, he only told the People, That his Fellow-sufferer had spoken what he thought was necessary, and they were also his Sentiments. And so submitted to Exe- cution. An Account of those Executed at Axminster and Honiton. At Axminster one also was executed, his Name Mr. Rose, he was a Gunner that landed with the Duke of Monmouth, he had a great Resolution, and not at all startled with the Fear Apr. c, so that he was obliged to do what he did for his own preservation ; but this was not sufficient, for being found guilty, he was also exe- cuted at the same Time and Place. The Case of Mr. Thomas Lawrence. Mr. Thomas Lawrence at Dorchester, had also very hard Measure. He had the Managing of an Estate belonging to a Person of Quality, who had a Barn in the Parish of Lyme, where the Duke landed. The Day after his landing a Party came and took away three Horses from off this Estate, which he having the Trust and Care of, makes Application to the Duke for them, adding, That he ought not to suffer any of his Master's Goods to be wanting, but must endeavour to recover them again. So mov'd hard to the Duke for the Horses, but all would not prevail , but at last had one, and was forced to leave two. This was look'd on as an abetting, being judged to be by Consent. After the Defeat was given, he was had before a Justice of the Peace, who bound him over to the Assises, where appearing, he was committed ; pleaded Not guilty on his Trial, which he pleaded to very honestly, yet was found guilty, and sentenced to die. My Lord was excellent at Improvement, t'was thought he would, if possible, have brought in the Gentleman that owned the Estate, who was very rich. This honest Mr. Lawrence was to be sacrificed, and his execution ordered to be at Warham, but my Lord's Favourite got a Reprieve for him by the Help of 22a C&e aaiegtern ^ransfaction^ Four hundred Pounds, Two hundred being actually paid, the other secured by Bond. I promised, before I conclude, to give some Account of the barbarous and cruel Whippings which were executed on many good, honest, and sufficient Persons, both Men and Women, in the Counties of Dorset, Devon, and Somerset, by the severe and cruel Sentence of the Lord Chief Justice ; some for such small Crimes, as an impartial Man may judge they deserved none at all : More especially one Mr. Stayle of Thorncomb in Devon- shire, his Sufferings were so hard, that it caused many to pity him ; he was a good Liver, well beloved among his Neighbours, and a true Protestant. Also one Mrs. Brown of Lyme suffered very dear in that Nature; she only jokingly said unto the Officer of the Excise, I will pay my Excise to King Monmouth; which being sworn before this severe Judge, she was found guilty of a Misdemeanor, was sentenc'd to be whipt in several Market Towns, which accordingly was done. But this Cruelty was not only extended to those of Riper Years, and able better to endure those painful Sufferings, but even to Children. A poor Boy ot Weymouth, in the County of Dorset, having got some Pamphlet relating somewhat to satisfie the People that the Duke of Mon- mouth came to secure the Protestant Religion, had the hard Fortune to take his Trial before this harsh Judge ; I think he was about ten or twelve Years of Age ; he had the Flesh of his Back so cut with the Whipping, that I heard he died with the same ; but whether he is dead or not, never was such Cruelty in all this World. And now we may see how just the Lord is, he that all that Time had no Mercy for any but those that appeared loose Villains, is pitied but by few. Capt. Madders's Last Prayer at the same Time and Place. Capt. Madders at the Time of the Duke's Landing was a Constable at Crewkern, in the County of Somerset, and so dili- gent and active for the King in his Office, that when two Gen- Capt. St^atitierg. 223 tlemen of Lyme came there, and brought the News of the Duke's Landing, and desired Horses to ride Post to acquaint his Majesty therewith, he immediately secured Horses for them, the Town being generally otherways bent, and assisted them so far as any called Loyal in those Times could do, which was re- presented to the Lord Chief Justice, in expectation thereby to save his Life. But an Enquiry being made about his Religion, and returned by a very worthy Gentleman of those Parts, That he was a good Protestant, an honest Man, had a very good Character amongst his Neighbours : O then, says he, Pll hold a Wager with you he is a Presbyterian, / can smell them forty Miles. Though moderately I now say, they can smell him two hundred Miles West j then surely he must die, because he was, and had the Character of a honest Man, a good Christian, and a brave Tradesman. But to be short, I could say a great deal more of him, being immediately acquainted with him, and was with him to the very last. Being brought to the Place of Exe- cution, he was the last Man except one executed, and he behaved himself, whilst the rest were executing, with great Zeal ; and lifting up his Hands and Eyes, would often say, Lord, make me so willing and ready to the last. And God did hear his Prayers; for though he seemed to the Spectators to be somewhat unwilling to die, yet at the last he died with as much Assurance and Chris- tian Resolution as any ; for after his publick Prayer he came once down the Ladder, and prayed again privately, then mounted the Ladder again ; the Sheriff saying, Mr. Madders, If you please you may have more Liberty; he answered, No, I thank you, Mr. Sheriff, now I am ready, I ain willing, and desire to be dissolved, and to be with Christ. Oh ! you cannot imagine what Comfort and Refreshment I have received in a few Minutesj my Co7nforts are so great that I cannot contain my self. So blessing and praising of God, he was translated, as I hope (we have no Grounds to imagine the contrary) from Earth to Heaven, repeating Rev. 20. 6, Blessed and holy is he that hath Part in the first Resurrection, on such the Second Death hath no Power. His publick Prayer was as followeth : O Eternal and ever blessed Lord God, look down upon me a miserable Sinner with an Eye of Pity and Compassion, in and through my dear Redeemer the Lord Jesus Christ. O Lord, 224 ^I)* %&t&mn Cransacttong* I acknowledge my self a great and grievous Sinner ; I have sinned against the clearest Light and the dearest Love ; I have deserved to have have been spurned from thy Presence, and from the Glory of thy Power, and that thou shouldest now say unto me, I will have no more to do with such an unworthy Wretch, such a polluted, filthy Creature as thou art, and hast been : But, O Lord, there is Mercy with thee that thou mayest be feared ; and thou hast promised, that if a Sinner turn from his Wick- edness, thou wilt have Mercy on him ; and tho' his Sins were as Scarlet, thou wouldest make them white as Wool : Fulfil, O Lord, thy gracious Promise unto me, a poor Supplicant, in this my last Hour of my Life ; purge and cleanse me from all Sin and Filthiness, give me true Repentance ; and if there lyeth any Sin not yet repented of, O Lord, thou hast heard my Prayers, my Sighs and Groans ; I hope and trust thou hast pardoned all my Sins, and wilt immediately receive my Soul. Look down in Mercy on my dear Wife and Family, be thou a. y Comfort, and all in all unto them. Now, Lord, I am coming to thee, assist me to the last Moment ; comfort my distressed Soul ; do more for me than I am able to ask for, or think of ; but what thou knowest to be needful and necessary for me, in and through the Merits of my dear Redeemer, the Lord Jesus Christ, to whom with thee and thy blessed Spirit of Grace be ascribed the King- dom, the Power, and the Glory for ever and ever. Amen. The Dying-words of Capt. Kidd, Executed at the same Time and Place. This Gentleman was the last executed at that Time ; as soon as Captain Madders was turned off, he began to prepare to follow, and called to his Guards and those present, Do you see this i (pointing up to Eleven that were dead before him) Do you think this is not dreadful to me, that Eleven of Twelve of us, that but a few Hours since came down together, are dead and in Eternity? And I am just going to follow them, and shall im- mediately be in the same Condition. Says one to him, It must 2Dr- temple* 225 be dreadful to Flesh and Blood. Says he, Well, Gentlemen, I will assure you, I am so far concerned, that methinks I bethink their Happiness, that they shouldbe so long before me in Bliss and Happiness : But Pit make haste to follow j I am satisfied this is the best Day that ever I saw : The Day of a Man's Death is said to be better than the Day of his Birth : And truly so I find it as to my Flesh, And I shall be presently free from Sin and Sorrow ; I am satisfied God hath done his best for me : I might have lived and have forgotten God, but now I am going where I shall sin no more : 'Tis a blessed Thing to be free from Sin, and to be with Christ : O how great were the Sufferings of Christ for us y beyond all that I can undergo / How great is that Glory to which I am going ! Then taking his Leave of the People then present, he prayed some small Time very devoutly, and with seem- ing great Joy and Comfort ; and the Executioner did his Office. There was executed also at the same Time divers others, as Mr. William Hewling, Dr. Temple, Mr. Matthews, with some others. The Last Speech of Dr. Temple of Nottingham, at the Place of Execution. Doctor Temple was one of them that Landed with the Duke, and was his Chief Physician and Chyrurgeon ; he lived in Not- tingham, but minding to see others of the World, (as I have heard) goes for Holland, where he came acquainted with the Duke of Monmouth j concerning which he thus spoke, just as he was going off the Ladder. Christian Friends, and Dear Countrymen, I have somewhat to say, and not very much, before I depart from you, and shall be seen no more, And, First, As to my Engagement with the Duke of Momnouth. Secondly, How far I was concerned : And, Thirdly, I shall leave all of you to be Judges in Matter of Fact : And so for the First, As a dying Man I now declare, that when I entred my self with the Duke of Monmouth, to be his Chyrurgeon, it was on Q 226 %ty aaiegtern ^rangacttong* no other Account but to serve him in the West-Indies ; where I knew no other Design whatsoever, but to possess himself of some of those Islands, until I had been at Sea two Days, wherein one privately told me, We are absolutely bound for England, and I should take it from him it was true : It much surprized me, but knowing no Way to avoid it, or to get on Shoar, thougn it was at that Time contrary to my Inclinations, if I could have avoided it, I would not let others see that I had that Dissatisfac- tion witKin me. After our Landing at Lyme, I knew it was never the nearer to attempt my Escape, the Country being so beset ; on the other Hand, if the Duke of Monmouth did win the Day, I might have raised my Fortunes as high as I could expect : These were the Arguments that Flesh and Blood did create in my Breast for Self-preservation. While I was with the said Duke, I did him as much Service as I could, and faithfully : After it pleased God to disperse that Army under his Command, I endeavoured to secure my self, but by Providence was taken at Honiton, from thence committed to Exon, and after removed to Dorchester, where I received my Sentence, and am now, as you see, just going to Execution : The Lord prevent all of you from such ignominious Deaths ; and I advise you all, that you never take any great Thing in Hand, but what you have a Warrant for from the Lord : I assure you I had no Satisfaction in this ; but this I am sure, that if I have done anything amiss in it, it is pardoned : I bless God I have that satisfaction, I die a Professor of the Church of England, I desire Pardon of all those I have any ways wronged or abused, as I freely forgive all those that have wronged or abused me ; I am in Charity with all Men. Lord, have Mercy upon me, give me Strength to go through these Pains, and give me full Assurance now at this last Moment : Come Lord Jesus, come quickly. Also one Samuel Robbins of Charmouth in the County of Dorset, that was executed, or rather murthered, at Warham, in the said County : I cannot pass him by in Silence, his Case being so extraordinary hard, that to speak moderately betwixt the King and his Case, I do say this, that I verily believe never Man suffered innocenter ; as I hope you will be satisfied in, after you have heard his Crime, and on what small Grounds he was found guilty, or so supposed, by my Lord Chief Justice. 9$r* Cljarleg »>peafie^ 227 He used generally in the Summer to use the Craft of Fishing, to get a competent Maintenance for his Family, and happened to be out at Sea a-fishing before Lyme that Day the Duke came in to land ; and was commanded on Board one of the Duke's Ships, he not knowing who they were, and they bought his Fish of him ; after which they told him that was the Duke of Mon- mouth, pointing at him, and that he was just going to Land : He desired to go on Shoar, which was refused, and told, that as soon as the Duke was landed he should have his Liberty ; so ac- cordingly he came on Shoar, and was never after with him, or ever took up Arms under him : I leave the Reader to judge whether this was High-Treason or no. This was all he was guilty of, except that he was a good honest Man, a zealous Christian, a Man of a very good Life and Conversation, as I think his Neighbours will attest it, in most Towns and Parishes where he lived : But alas he had a good Book in his House when taken, caird, The solemn League and Covenant; this was the High-Treason he must be guilty of, which was aggravated to the Lord Chief Justice, by one or two hot Spirits his Neighbours. But to be short, he received Sentence of Death with great Courage, and not at all dismayed, saying very often in Prison before, If it pleased God to call him now (to glorifie his Name by this Pro- vidence of his) to Death , he should be ready j but (said he) / am as Innocent of any thing I have done against any Man that may deserve this Punishment as the Child now unborn. When he came to the Place of Execution, he very chearfully declared his Innocency to the Spectators, as before, and so praying very devoutly for some Time, he was executed : His Prayer I have no exact Copy of. Also one Mr. Charles Sfteake oi London, a Gentleman of good Extraction, being Son to the Worshipful George Sfieake, Esq ; near Illminster in the County of Somerset, where he was executed : His Case also was extraordinary hard ; but there may be two great Reasons given why he was executed ; the first was, Because he came from that good Pious Family, which always have been Opposers to Popery, and suffered deeply for their Courage that Way. Secondly, The said Mr. Charles Speake had purchased some great Place in the King's Bench or Common Pleas, which was very profitable to him ; so that by his Fall there being a Q2 228 W$z H&t&mn r &vanmtion&. Forfeiture, much Money may be made of it ; all Intercession could not avail with the L. C. J. for his Life. He happened to be at Ilhninster at the Time of the Duke's being there, which was the greatest Crime he was guilty of; the Validity of his Evidence I leave to those in the West, which know how far it was carried that Way. He was a fine courteous loving Gentleman ; and not- withstanding his Youth, he acted the Part of an old Christian Soldier at his Death, preparing himself to undergo those Pains, saying very often, They were nothing to his Deserts from God Almighty ; but as for what I am accused of, and sentenced for, I hope you will believe I am not so guilty as my Judge and Ac- cusers have endeavoured to make me : If it had pleased God, I should have been willing to have lived some Time longer, but God's Time being come, I am willing, I will be contented to drink this bitter Cup off. Being at the Place of Execution, the Crowd was so great, that I suppose he was shorter than other- wise he would have been ; but alas ! How could it be ? For on every Side of him, as well as up and down the Town, the Inha- bitants were weeping and bewailing : Oh 'tis the worst Day that ever we saw in this Town I Must this good Gentleman die here f Oh yet save his Life, I am ready to die for him / And the like. He prayed very heartily for near an Hour, and sung a Psalm, and so we hope was translated to Heaven, there to sing everlasting Praises and Hallelujahs. His Father and Mother you may easily judge were not a little concerned about him ; but their Adversaries Malice ended not here, but Father and Mother must be brought in, and how many Thousands of Pounds it cost them, I think is too well known in London j and most Parts of the Kingdom have heard in the Publick Letters their Names mentioned. Some may think they were concerned with the Duke, but I never heard there was so much made appear against them, as could have made them been brought in guilty of High Misdemeanors : Had not the good Gentleman and his Lady been Vertuous People, abhorring the Debaucheries of the Times, and so much a competent Estate, able to spare Ten or Twelve Thousand Pounds ; the hard Usage this honest brave Gentleman and his vertuous Lady had, and their Sufferings, to relate them, would be too large ; and besides, it is so well known in most Places in the West, that I shall, without saying any more, proceed. 9$r* %nrp Bottom 229 And next for Mr. P arret, who was executed at Taunton; if I mistake not, he said he was a Londoner, and a Brewer. When he came to the Place of Execution, he seemed a Man almost un- concerned at Death. After some Time he began to deliver himself somewhat low in Voice to the People, and after rising by Degrees, he seemed more like a Minister in a Pulpit Preaching devoutly, than a Prisoner just going to Execution ; but I being then not well, could not tarry to see his End. But the Character I had, was, That he desired all not to be faint-hearted because of their Fall, and to think that there was no hopes remaining. He said, He verily believed God would yet work out Deliverance for them, and at the Time they were in the greatest Extremity, that would be God's Opportunity. Put your whole Trust and Confidence and Dependence on the Lord, and he will never leave you, nor forsake you. And much more ; but having no more exact Copy, I shall not enlarge, but come to some other. The Last Speech of Henry Boddy, Executed at Bath. While he was in Prison, especially after Sentence, he behaved himself mighty humble, meek, and was much in Meditation, which was observed by several Divines, especially one, who at- tended him to his last, his Name Mr. Simpson. His poor Wife coming to see him at Wells, and to make her Interest with some Friends, if possible to save his Life ; but finding it lost Labour, and that she could by no Means prevail, she died there for Grief before her Husband was executed, to his great Grief. When he came to the Place of Execution, he delivered himself to the People in these Words : Good People, I am come here to pay a Debt due to Nature, which every one, one time or another, must pay, though not in this Manner or Nature. I am condemned as a Traitor and Rebel against my King, which were Things I always hated and abhorred ; and therefore give me so much Time as to deliver my self to you ; and what I say I hope you will believe me at this Time, being just going to give an Account, not only for every idle Word, but for all Things I have done since I have had a Being. 230 %ty Mt&ttvn Ixangacttong* / was born in Lyme Regis in the County of Dorset, and bred up a Seaman from my Infancy; I have had the honour to serve his Majesty King Charles the Second, in his Wars with the Dutch and French, divers Times, I always thought it to be the Duty of every true English-man to stand up in his Country's ( Quarrel with Foreigners, to maintain our ancient Priviledges and Honour of our Nation. I served him faithfully : And as for any Undertaking now with the late Duke #/" Monmouth, for which 1 am now come to suffer Death; as for my Designs, I am sure they were good, for I did believe him to be my Soveraigrts Son and Heir; but if otherwise, I have done amiss, and am sorry, and hope the Lord hath pardoned it. While I was in Arms, I am sure there's none can say I have personally wronged them, I desire all yonr Prayers for me to the last. I am no Orator, therefore if you please (speaking to the Minister) do these last Spiritual Services for me, as for to pray with me, and for me. The Minister being much taken with him, desired Leave of the Sheriff to ask him some Questions ; which being granted, the Minister said unto him, / must inake bold with you, but not to hold you too long before I pray, but to satisfe my self and the People on what Ground you stand; I mean as concerning your everlasting State, Now pray resolve me a few Things : First, Whether you do own that Doctrine of Non-resistance, own y d by the Church, That it is not lawful on any Account whatsoever, to take up Arms against the King? O Sir ! As to that I answer, Could I have been satisfied he had been my lawful Prince, I should not have done it. But, said the Minister, he is, and you are not to be Judge; except you own those Things, some People will hardly have Charity for you after you are dead. What matters that, said he ? Would you have me, now you put me so close to it, to lie ? No, I will not. I say, if he was my lawful King, I was misled in my Judgment, and have committed a great Error ; but, Lord, I hope thou hast washed away all my Sins, in and through the Blood of my dear Redeemer, in whose alone Merits I hope for Mercy. I desire to be asked no more Questions. Then the Minister prayed very devoutly near half an Hour; after which, lifting up his Hands and Eyes to Heaven, he quietly submitted to Death. 9t£r* 3Iofm i?fc&& 231 Mr. John Hick's Last Speech, 1685. I suppose the Spectators here present may expect I should speak something before I leave this sanguinary Stage and Pas- sage through my Bloody Sufferings, by which my immortal Spirit will be speedily transported into an invisible and eternal World, and I conclude that they have different Resentments hereof. Some resent them with much Joy, high Exultation and Triumph, others with equal Grief and Sorrow ; that to the one I am a most pleasant Spectacle, that they behold me with high Com- placency and Delight ; but to the other I am a mournful and un- pleasant one, and they behold me with no less Pity and Com- passion. Concerning the first, I can say, I freely and heartily forgive them, and heartily pray that God would most mercifully and graciously prevent their Mourning through Misery, not only here, but eternally hereafter. Concerning the other, I will say, Weep for your own Sins, and for the Sins of the Nation, for the highest Rebellions that ever were committed against the Great and Eternal God ; lament bitterly for those Sins that have been the meritorious Cause of the late terrible Judgment, that which I fear will cause God to break in upon this Nation with an overflowing Deluge of Judgments, which are far more tremendous and dreadful. As for sympathizing with me, in drinking this bitter Cup appointed for me, I return you most humble and hearty Thanks, earnestly desiring God to come unto you, and fill your Souls with all Celestial Comforts and Spiritual Consolations. Something I must say to purge and clear my self from a false Accusation laid to my Charge ; as that I was en- gaged with Colonel Blood in rescuing Col. Mason near Boston, when he was sent down with a Guard from London to York, to be tried for High-Treason ; and that I was the Man that killed the Barber of that City ; and that also I was with him when he stole the Crown. Now as I am a dying Man, and upon the very Brink of a very stupendious Eternity, (the Truth and Reality whereof I firmly believe) without any Reservation or the least Equivocation, I do declare in the Presence of the All seeing God, that impartial Judge, before whom in a very little Time I must appear, I never saw nor conversed with Mr. Thomas Blood, from 23a %^z WLtmvn %vanmtion&+ 1656, till after he stole the Crown, which was in 71 or 72, nor was ever engaged with him in any of his Treasonable Plots or Practices. 'Tis true, I being involved in great Trouble of an- other Nature, (of which I have given to the World a Narrative, and which is notoriously known in the Country where I then lived, by some that were Enemies to me for my Preaching) I was persuaded to apply my self to Mr. Blood, to procure by his Intercession his late Majesty's gracious Favour : Accordingly he brought me into his Royal Presence ; while I was there, his Majesty carried it with great Clemency, without expressing one Word of that which I am now charged with. Mr. Blood continued with his Majesty a little longer than I did ; then he told me that he had granted me a Pardon, which I did thank- fully accept of, knowing it would free me from all Penalties and Troubles that I was obnoxious to, and were occasioned to me by my Non-conformity. Then engaging him to take out my Pardon ; he told me, That he got it o?tt with several others that had been engaged with him in several Treasonable Designs and Actions j at which I was troubled, supposing it might be im- puted to me thereby ; yet, God knows, I have often since re- flected upon it with great Regret and Dissatisfaction. If Mr. Blood did inform the late King to make himself the more consi- derable, and to bring as many of his Party as he could to accept of their Pardons, that he might be rendered utterly incapable of Plotting any further Mischief against his Government, or any otherways that I was engaged with him in any of his Treasonable Attempts ; I now appeal to God, as a dying Man, concerning it, that he hath done me an irreparable Wrong. I also in the same Manner do declare, that I was never ingaged with any Party in Plotting or Designing, or Contriving any Treason or Rebellion against the late King, and particularly, that I was altogether unconcerned in, and unacquainted with that for which my Lord Russel and others suffered, and as much a Stranger to any against the present King. And whereas it is reported of me, That at Taunton / persuaded the late Duke of Monmouth to assume the Title of King; I do once more solemnly declare, That I saw not the said Duke, nor had any Converse with him 'till he came to Shipton-Mallet, which was thirteen Days after he landed, and several Days after he had been at Taunton, And 2t£r> 3]of)n ^tcfegf. 233 'tis as false that I rid to and fro in the West to stir up and per- suade Men to go into his Army, and rebel against his present Majesty ; for I was in the East-Country when the Duke landed, and from thence I went directly to him, when he was at Shipton- Mallet, not one Man accompanying me from thence. But hitherto as I lived, so now I die, owning and professing the true Reformed Christian (commonly called the Protestant) Religion, which is founded on the pure written Word of God only, and which I acknowledge likewise to be comprehended in the Articles of the Doctrine of the Church. This Religion I have made a reasonable and free Choice of, and have heartily embraced, not only as it protests against all Pagan and Mahometan Religion, but against the Corruption of the Christian ; and I humbly and earnestly pray to God that by his Infinite Wisdom and Almighty Power, he will prevent not only the utter Extirpation but Dimi- nution thereof, by the Heighth and Influence of what is con- trary thereto ; and for that End the Lord make the Professors of it to live up more to its Principles and Rules, and bring their Hearts and Conversations more under the Government and Power of the same. I die also owning my Ministry, Non- conformity, for which I have suffer'd so much, and which doth now obstruct the King's Grace and Mercy to be manifested and extended to me : For as I chose it not constrainedly, so I appeal to God as a dying Man, not moved from Sullenness or Humour, or factious Temper, or erroneous Principles of Edu- cation, or from secular Interests, or worldly Advantages, but clearly from the Dictates of my own Conscience, and as I judged it to be the Cause of God, and to have more of Divine Truth in it than that which is contrary thereto ; so now I see no Cause to repent of it, nor to recede from it ; not questioning but God will own it at the last Judgment-day. If no more had been required after the late King's Restauration to qualifie Ministers for Publick Preaching, than was after the first Restauration from the Time of Charles the First, probably I might have satisfied my self therewith, and not scrupled Conformity thereto ; but the Terms and Conditions thereof, by a particular Law made in 1662, being not only new, but so strict and severe, that I could never have Satisfaction in my own Conscience, after all Endeavours used for a Compliance therewith, and a Conformity thereto : To say 234 ^z Mtmvn tCrangaction^ nothing of the Covenant, which I never took, but the giving my Assent and Consent, have been too difficult and hard for me to comply with. And I very well remember, that about Fourteen Years ago, entring into a Discourse with Mr. Patrick Heldore, an Irish-man, who was contemporary with me in Dublin, concern- ing Conformity, which he much endeavour'd to persuade me to ; I urg*d the Severity of the foremention'd Conditions against it, and after some Debates and Reasons with him, I told him I did believe they were contrived and designed on Purpose to prevent our Publick Preaching, and to keep us out of the Church : To which he Ingenuously replied. He judged it was so : For, said he, a Bishop in Ireland {whose Name I have forgot) told me the very same. But though I could not wade through, and conquer this Diffi- culty, yet I censure not those that did it ; and I believe after all the hottest Disputes, and most vehement Debates, and violent contests between Conformist and Non-conformist, there are of both Parties will be glorified in Heaven hereafter. According to the 29th Article of the Church of England, a visible Church is a Congregation of Faithful Men, in the which the pure Word of God is Preached, the Sacraments of the Lord duly admi- nistred, according to Christ's Ordinance, and all those Things that of Necessity are requisite and necessary to Salvation ; so with such a Church have I held the most intimate Communion, and with such (did I live) could hold it : I would not therefore be so incorporated with any Church, as to exclude me from, and render me incapable of holding Communion with other Churches ; I was never strongly bound up to any Form of Ecclesiastical Government, but that under which a pure and undefiled Religion doth flourish, and that which contains and really practises Holiness, and advances the Kingdom of God in the World, that can I approve of, and willingly live under, were I to live. I did approve of the ancient and present Form of Civil Go- vernment, English Monarchy I am fully satisfied with, and do also declare, that it is not warrantable, for any Subject to take up Arms against, and resist their Lawful Soveraigns and Rightful Princes : And therefore had I not been convinced by several Things that I have read and heard, to believe that the late Duke 9£r* 3Jof)n ^fcfe^ 235 of Monmouth was the Legitimate Son of his Father Charles the Second, I had never gone into his Army, judging that without this I could not be freed from the Guilt of Rebellion, which I always resolved to keep my self clear from : And tho ? his Father denied he was married to his Mother, I thought it might be answered with this ; That Kings and Princes, for State-Reasons, often cannot be fathomed by their Subjects, affirming and deny- ings Thing which otherwise they would not do, and make even their natural Affections to truckle and stoop thereto. I exhort all to abhor all Treasonable Plots, and Pretences of all Rebellion, with the highest Detestation, and to take the plain Text of Sacred Scripture to walk by, in honouring and obeying, and living in Subjection to Rightful Kings, and not readily to receive, or suddenly to be impressed with evil Reports and Defamations of them, also not rashly to be Propagators of the same. I desire God to forgive all mine Enemies, and to give me an Heart to forgive them, which are many, some mighty, and all most malicious : Particularly Barter of Lisnel, who betrayed me, and proved such a Traitor to James D. of Monmouth, his old and intimate Friend. I am grievously afflicted that I should prove the Occasion of the great Sufferings of so many Persons and Families : But this hath fallen under the Just and Wise Ordering of Divine Providence, as David 's going to Abimelech, when he proved the Occasion of the Death of all the Persons, Men, Women, and Children in the City : But who shall say unto God, What doest thou f The Care of my most dear Wife and a great many Children, I cast upon God, who I hope will be better than the best of Husbands unto her, and the best of Fathers unto them : God knows how just and legal Right my Wife hath unto her Estate ; to him therefore I commit her, to defend her from the Violence and Oppression of Men, particularly from a most inhumane and unnatural Brother : But no Wonder if he will lay violent Hands upon his Sister's Estate, that hath so often laid them on his own Father. I die a deeply humbled, self- judging, and self-condemning Sinner, loathing and abhorring my many and great Iniquities, and my self for them, earnestly desiring full Redemption from the Bonds of Corruption, under which I have groaned so many Years, longing for a most perfect Conformity to the most Holy and Glorious God, the only infinite 236 c. James 1. 18. Of his own Will begat he us with the Word of Truth, that we should be a kind of First-fruits of his Creatures. 1 Pet. 1. 3. Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which according to his abundant Mercy hath begotten us again to a lively Hope by the Resurrection of Jesus Christ. Ver. 13. Wherefore gird up the Loins of your Mind, S^c. Coloss. 3. 1,2. If ye then be risen with Christ, seek those Things that are above : Set your Affections on Things above, not, dr^c. Gal. 5. 24. And they that are Chris fs have crucified the Flesh with the Affections and Lusts, &>c. Eph. 2. 1. And you hath he quickned, who were dead in Trespasses and Sins. Rev. 20. 6. Blessed and holy is he that hath Part in the First Resurrection, on such the Second Death hath no Power. Rom. 8. 1. There is therefore now no Condemnation, &>c. 1 Pet. 1. 15. But as he that hath called you is holy, so be ye, &>c. Ver. 23. Being born again, not of corruptible Seed, &^c. Psal. 4. 3. But know that the Lord hath set apart him that is Godly for himself, dr^c. I shall mention now no more, the whole Bible abounds with these Texts, with what a Renovation and Change of our carnal and corrupt Hearts and Natures, there must be, with Holiness of Life and Conversation, before we can be capable of a future and blessed Immortality, and of inheriting the Kingdom of God for ever and ever. Amen. R 242 ^Ije afllegtern ^rangacttorrgf* A Letter written by Mr. John Hicks, Octob. 5. the Day before his Death. My Dear Nephew- I am yet in the Land of the Living, though in the Mouth of Death ; \ have been concerned for you, next to my own Children ; before I die, I thought fit to write two or three lines to you, as a Manifestation of my great Love to you : I earnestly desire the Welfare of you here, and to Eternity hereafter ; next to my own Wife and Children, you will want me when I am gone ; but I hope the Lord will take Care of you ; make it your Business to walk with him, to serve him faithfully ; flee youthful Lusts, and Remember your Creator in. the Days of your Youth ; be deeply concern'd to have your Heart and Nature changed, and an Interest in Christ secured unto you. Death comes suddenly, you know not when, where, nor how you shall die : Let Time therefore be most precious to you ; fill it up with Work and Duty ; live by Faith more than by Sense ; and this will stand by you when you come to die: Seek the Things which are above, and set your Affections upon them ; have your Conver- sation in Heaven whilst you are upon Earth. When you see your Parents, give my dear Love to them and their children ; the Lord grant that we may meet in his everlasting Kingdom : When you see any of your Cousins, give my dear Love to them, and be not asham'd of my Sufferings. I wrote last Saturday was a Seven night to my Brother George, but whether he is at London or Worcester, I know not ; I wrote to him to desire him to Petition the King, that some Favour and Mercy might be shewed me, if he thought fit. Things that are made to aggravate my Crime, I am clear from ; as that I persuaded the Duke of Monmouth to assume the Title of King at Taunton, when I was not there with him, nor in thirteen Days after he came into England ; and that I rode to and fro in the West to persuade People to go into his Army, when I was in the East, and came from thence to him in the West ; but my Non-con- formity cuts me, and obstructs the King's Mercy from being extended to me, as I am told ; but the Will of the Lord be done ; S^r. 3|oljn ^tcfesf. 243 the Life to come is infinitely better than this : Many more Things are laid to my Charge, which I am no more guilty of than your self. If your Uncle be in Town, go speedily to him, and give him my dear Love. I pray for you, who am Your most Affectionate Uncle, Octob. 5. 1685. " J. H. A Letter to his Wife, Septemb. 23. 1665. My Dearest Love, I hope you received a few Lines from me by the way of London ; once more I write to you, by our faithful and trusty Friend, W. D., who hath been at Exon. If there be need for it, he knows many of my dear and faithful Friends there, who wish you would come and live among them ; and if your Estate fail, I think it very advisable so to do ; I hope God will stand by you, and defend you : My Dear, see me in God, as I must you. I must now bid Adieu to all earthly and worldly Comforts, and all the pleasant and delightful Objects of Sense. I bless God for all present Mercies and Comforts hitherto I have had ; what will be after this Day I know not, but the Will of the Lord be done. My Dear, be very cautious not to speak one Word, lest it be wrested to a wrong Sense, which may ruin you ; I have not writ what I would of this Nature, take the Advice of Friends, and of what I send by our Friend. Olet not the everlasting Arms of God be withdrawn from you one Moment ; and let him strengthen you with all Might, according to his glorious Power, and to all Patience and Long-suffering, with Joy fulness ! Pray hard for victory over Passion, and be much in private Closet-Prayer with God; and often read the Holy Bible, and other good Books; the Lord continually guide, direct, and counsel you. My Dear, I return you a thousand Thanks for all the Love you have shown me and my Children, and particularly for the high and great Demonstration you have given hereof in this Day of my Distress. I hope my Daughters will be as dutiful to you, and be as much concerned for your Comfort and Welfare, as if you had travelled with them, and brought them into the World ; R 2 244 ^f)* flfllegtern Crangacttongj* God bless my dear little Ones and them together, I shall die their most affectionate and praying Father ; God, I hope, will uphold, support, and comfort me at the last Hour, and enable me to overcome the Temptations I shall violently be assaulted with before I die. God by his infinite and freest Mercies, in Jesus Christ, pardon all the neglect of Relative Duties, (which I have bitterly lamented and bewailed before God, with all the Sins I am guilty of) for the Sake of our dearest Lord and Redeemer. The Lord make you grow in all Grace more than ever, and make this great Affliction so humbly purifying and spiritualizing to you as well as me, that it may work for us both a far more exceeding and eternal Weight of Glory. Let him take your Soul in his most dearest Embraces, and lodge it in the Bosom of his Love here, and make us to meet in the full and everlasting Fruition and Enjoyment of him hereafter. Though it be dangerous for you to vindicate that I die for, yet be not too much cast down for it : I will say no more as to that. My hearty and affectionate Respects to all my dear Friends ; I need not name them ; I hope to meet them with your self, to inherit Eternal Life, through the Merits of Christ's Death. Farewell, my Dear, fare well in the Lord, until we meet to be married to him for ever. My Heart is as full of Love to thee, as it was the first Day I married thee ; and if God spar'd my Life, it should have been as fully manifested until Death : Therefore I rest, Your most Affectionate and Endeared Husband, Septemb. 23. 1685. J. H. Another Letter. I received your Letter by Mr. Skinner ; I bless God that you and my Babes are well; the Lord continue their Lives to be a Blessing and Comfort to you, and enable you to see them well Educated in the Fear of God ; and when God takes me away, let him be a Husband to guide, direct, succour, comfort, and support you, and to lodge your Soul in the Bosom of his Love; and let him be a Father to them, and their Portion for ever. Monday last my Brother went to London to try what could be 9$r. 3|oj)n l$itk&. 245 done for me; what the Success will be, I know not : I desire the Lord every Day to prepare me for Death, and carry me above the Fear of it, by the Discoveries of his everlasting Love unto my Soul, and clearing up my Right and Title to everlasting Life ; and by sealing up to me the Pardon of all my Sins, through the most precious Blood of Jesus Christ. Let us pray hard and much for each other : When I leave this World, it shall be with Prayer for thee ; if God give me Life how shall I study to be a Comfort to thee, and to live up to my Marriage as well as Baptismal Covenant ! To all my Friends tender my affectionate Respects ; I hope their Prayers will one Way or other be heard for me ; let the Almighty be your Protector, Supporter, and Comforter. There be two Books I do recommend to you to read when you are retired, as well as in your family : Pierce's Preparation for Death, and Fox's Redemption of Time. Now let our Souls meet together in one most blessed God, in our dearest Jesus, and sweetest Saviour; let them clasp and cling about him, and be sick for the Love of him ; and that we may meet to enjoy him fully to Eternity, and be satisfied with his Love for ever. A thousand Loves, if I had them, I would send to thee, next to my dearest Lord Jesus, and the Things that are Heavenly, Spiritual, and Immortal : I love thee : What I can spare for thee is conveyed to thee and my dear Children, from Thy most Affectionate and Faithful Husband, and their most Loving Father, J. H. Another Letter. My most Dear Love, I hope you have received my last ; once more, as a dead and living Man (through Difficulty) I write to you, though I yet do not know when or where I shall die, but expect Death every Day ; when that Message is brought to me, I hope, through the Grace and Strength of Christ, it will be no Surprize to me ; that neither my Lips, Flesh, nor Heart will tremble when I hear it ; I know the Cause for which I suffer ; God hath and has singled me out from many of my Brethren (which I never have been 246 <®fyt H&t&mn ^rangacttons* without some Apprehensions of, for above these twenty Years) to lay down my Life ; how far it is for his Cause, will be judged at the last Day : I bless God, who hath kept me from all Temp- tations to Conformity ; though it hath brought me to Ruin and Destruction in this World, it will be no fit Season for you ,to vindicate that for which I am called to suffer, be silent, and leave it to God ; I advise you to all Prudence in this Case : Have your own reserved Thoughts, and let them concerning me support and comfort you ; if there never happen a Time for you to glbry in my Sufferings, it will be hereafter ; do you but walk with God (though through Prudence you must hold your Tongue) and be not asham'd you had such a Husband ; I thank God that gave it me, whose Courage and publick Spirit for the Protestant Religion, the Civil Liberties of his Country, even true English Liberties, hath in this ignominious Way brought me to the Conclusion and End of my Time. Mourn not, my Dear, as one without Hope, let the World know you have something from me, something from your self, as a Christian, but ten thousand times more from God, to comfort and support you ; see Christ by an Eye of Faith, infinitely more lovely and beau- tiful than myself ; let him be married to your Soul ; let him be the Chiefest of ten thousand, and more dear and precious to ^you ; it is not long we shall be separated, before we shall see one another in a Spiritual Enjoyment, separated from all fleshly Pleasures and Delights, yet infinitely more sweet and satisfying to Immortal Spirits, as you and I us'd to see Streams from the Fountain, and the largest Streams in the Ocean ; so let us see one another in God, the ever-flowing and over-flowing Fountain of all Good, the fathomless and boundless Ocean of Good. Seek much the Things which are above, live with your Affec- tions set upon them ; and have your Conversation in Heaven whilst you are upon Earth. I continue yet to pray for you, as for my self, and shall continue to do it until I die ; in my last Prayers you shall be interested with my dear Babes, whom I hope God will take into Covenant with him, and number them among his Adopted Ones, and of that incorruptible Inheritance which is in Heaven : I hope God will spare their Life to see them Educated, and guide and assist you therein, and theirs to be a Blessing and Comfort to you : Consider your Condition is Captain abradant #nglep* 247 not single and alone, this Country affords a Multitude of the like sad and deplorable Instances ; let this make you more to possess your Soul with Patience and Humility, calmly and quietly to submit to the good Will of God. I have left a Paper behind me for you to read ; and our Friend can tell with what Difficulty I write it, therefore must have many Defects and Imperfections, which must be over-looked and mended ; pre- serve the two Bibles for my dear James and Betty. What shall I say more, my Dearest? I must break off with my Heart full of Love to thee ; and subscribe my self Your most Dear and Affectionate Husband till Death, Octob. 3. 1685. J. H. Captain Abraham Ansley's Last Speech. I am come to pay a Debt to Nature; 'tis a Debt that all must pay, though some after one Manner, and some after another : The Way that I pay it may be thought by some few ignominious, but not so by me ; having long since, as a true Englishman, thought it my Duty to venture my Life in Defence of the Protestant Religion against Popery and Arbitrary Power : For this same Purpose I came from my House to the Duke of Momnouth's Army : At first I was a Lieutenant, and then a Captain, and I was in all the Action the Foot was engaged in, which I do not repent : For had I a thousand Lives, they should all have been engaged in the same Cause, although it hath pleased the wise God (for Reasons best known to himself) to blast our Designs ; but he will deliver his People by Ways we know nor think not of : I might have saved my Life, if I would have done as some narrow-soul'd Persons have done, by impeaching others ; but I abhor such Ways of Deliverance, chusing rather to suffer Affliction with the People of God, than to enjoy Life with Sin. As to my Religion, I own the Way and Practice of the Independent Churches, and in that Faith I die, depending on the Merits of our Saviour Jesus Christ for my Eternal Salvation : His Blessing be with you all. Farewel to thee, poor England, Farewel. Abraham Ansley* 248 W$z WLt&mn %vammion&. Mr. Ansley's Last Letter. Sir, I now send you my Last Farewel, being going to lay down my Life with Joy and Assurance of Life Eternal ; for which blessed be the Holy One of Israel, who never leaves nor forsakes those that put their Trust in him, and give you many Thanks for your Kindness to me, the Lord make it up to you, by pouring upon you' a daily Portion of his most Holy Spirit, and deliver you from your Bonds. My Enemies have done what they could to afflict this Body ; but blessed be the most High, who hath given me Strength, Patience, and Courage to endure all they can lay upon me. The Grace of our Lord Jesus Christ, and the Fellowship of his Holy Spirit attend you ; which is the Prayer of your dying Friend, but living Brother in Christ Jesus, Abraham Ansley. From Taunton Castle> Sept 21. 1685. Mr. Josias Askew's Letter to his Father. Honoured Father, I not having an Opportunity to make my Gratitude known to you for all your Endeavours, for the saving a poor, vain, perish- ing, and troublesome Life ; and seeing it is all in vain, I would desire you both to acquiesce in the Will of God, and rejoice with me for this happy Day of my Departure from this State of Pilgrimage, home to the Possession of those Heavenly Mansions, which my God and Father hath provided for me, in and through my Lord Jesus Christ : It is in him alone I put my Trust and Confidence, and therefore can boldly say, Who is he that con- demneth ? It is. Christ that died, yea rather, that is risen again and is set down at the Right Hand of God, making Intercession for all those that have a well-grounded Confidence in him. My Time is but short, and by Reason of Company I am disturbed ; therefore I conclude with my last Breath, begging of God that he would keep you constant in his Fear, in this Day of great 9£r* Jo^tasf &0feeto> 249 Temptation, and at last receive you to his Glory, where we shall once more unite in Praising without interruption or Dis- traction, World without End, Amen : Until which Time the Grace of God the Father, the love of God the Son, the comfort- able Refreshings of God the Holy Ghost, be with you, all yours, and the whole Israel of God, both now and for ever : Which is the hearty Prayer of your Son, Josias Askew. Pray remember me to all with Joy. Another Letter to his Friend. Madam, You have been a Partaker with me in my Troubles, I would also make you Partaker with me in my Joys ; seeing my Wed- ding day is come, the Day of the Bridegroom is at hand, and I am this Day to be stript of my Rags of Corruption, to be cloathed upon with the White Robe of his Righteousness and Purity, and to be married to my Husband, and to be given to the Embraces of my Lord Jesus Christ for ever and ever. Learn not to repine at the Holy Determination of an Infinite Wise God, but rest satisfied in his Will, knowing that he doth all Things for the Best, to them that fear him : Weep not for me who am only changing this World of Temptation, of Troubles and Afflictions : It hath pleased God to call me a little before you, but you must soon follow after ; keep therefore the Fear of God before your Eyes, and then you will have Cause to rejoice, and not to mourn ; when at the Time of Departure you may have Cause to say with me, / have run my Race, J have finished my Course, 1 have kept the Faith, henceforth is laid up for me a Crown of Glory which fadeth not awayj which that you may be able to say, is the hearty prayer of Your Friend and Servant, Josias Askew. The Account his Friend gives of him. To prevent your further Trouble in suing for a Pardon, I think it convenient to let you know, I do not question but my dear Cousin hath had his Pardon sealed by the King of Kings, 250 %^t aaiegftern Cranjsattfonsf* and is in everlasting Blessedness, singing Hallelujahs, Salvation, Glory, and Honour, to him that sits upon the Throne, and to the Lamb, for ever and ever ; For God did so carry him through to drink that Bitter Cup, with so much Courage and Chearful- ness to the last, as was to the Admiration of all Spectators, not- withstanding the terrible Sight he saw at the Place of Suffering, and so vehemently, as he was tried by the Adversary, yet it did not in the least discompose him, or alter his countenance ; for he continued with a smiling Countenance to the last, and was transported above Measure : I want Words to express it, he was like One wrapt up in Heaven, with his Heart there, and his Eyes fixed thereon. I could wish you had been there, it would have driven away all Cause of Sorrow from your Heart, to see his Deportment, and hear the gracious Words that proceeded out of his Mouth : He remembreth his duty to you both, and left PauPs Blessing with you, Grace, Mercy, and Peace ; his Love to his dear Sister ; he desires her not to be troubled for him, for he hath made his Peace with God, and was assured he should go to Eternal Happiness ; he would have written more to you and to his Sister, but that he had so short a Time after Sentence, that he wanted Opportunity ; when he went out of Prison, he said, Gentlemen, now I am going, and it is the Time I much longed for; I would not change with him that passeth Sentence upon me, for a World. I was with him to the last, and seeing his Courage, did very much encourage me, though I never saw such a Sight with my Eyes. The Behaviour of John Holway, before and at the Place of his Execution at Warham, in the County of Dorset. He lived in Lyme where the Duke Landed, and appeared in Arms at that Time, until his Captain left him ; then took up Arms under the Duke of Monm.outh, and went with him, until the King's Proclamation came forth, That all that would lay down their Arms before some Justice of the Peace, in four Days John Holwat being taken to the pla.ce of eis Execution at Wa.rham. P. 250. 9£r* 9$attIjrto& 251 after, and take a Certificate for their so doing, they should be acquitted, and have his Majesty's Pardon, which this Person did, though one Day too late ; which Blot my Lord Chief Justice hit, being very good at it, and passed the Sentence of Death on him. Before his Trial he was not much concerned at his Case, and thought himself almost out of Danger : But to be short, he received his Sentence with much Courage and Resolution, and by the Means of one Mr. Tiller, who was to suffer with him, was brought to that settled Frame of Spirit, as is fit for one in that Condition : As he was riding in the Cart, toward the Place of Execution, the Troopers, being just behind the Cart, he told them, They shewed like Brave Fellows, but, said he, if I were to have my Life for fighting the best five of you, I would not question it. At the Place of Execution he said not much, But that he thought his and other Mens Blood would be revenged one' Time or another, and said, Forgive me, have Mercy on my poor Soul, pardon all my Sins, and the like, and so the Executioner did his office. The Last Speech and Prayer of Mr. Matthews at the Place of Execution. He was much concerned the Morning before he died, to see his Wife weep, and to be in such a Passion for him, which drew Tears from his Eyes ; and taking her in his Arms, said, My Dear, prithee do not disturb me at this Time, but endeavour to siibmit to the Will of God j and although thy Husband is going from thee, yet I trust God will be all in all unto thee; sure, my Dear, you will make my Passage . into Eternity more Trouble- som than otherwise, if you thus lament and take on for me ; I am very sensible of thy tender Love towards me, but would have you consider, that this Separation will be so much for my advantage, as your loss cannot parallel. I thank God I am willing to die, and to be with 7ny Jesus j be satisfied the will of God must be done : Thy Will be done, God, in Earth as it in Heaven: So 25a Cfje Mt&mn ^rangactiong* embracing her, took his last Farewel of her, and prepared to go to the Place of Execution, where being come, he with a very modest, sober, composed Frame of Spirit stood while he saw several executed before him ; his turn being come, he thus spake : Dear Countrymen, I suppose we are all of one Kingdom and Nation, and I hope Protestants j O I wonder we should be so cruel and bloodthirsty one towards another ; I have heard it said heretofore, that England could never be ruirtd but by her- self, which now I fear is a doing. Lord have Mercy on poor England, turn the Hearts of the Inhabitants thereof cause them to love one another, and to forget one anothers Infirmities, Have Mercy, O Lord, on me; give me Strength and Patience to fulfil thy Will, comfort my dear and sorrowful Wife, be a Husband unto her, stand by her in the greatest Trouble and Affliction, let her depend upon thy Providence ; be 7nerciful to all men, preserve this Nation from Popery, find out yet a Way for its Deliverance, if it be thy good Will, and give all Men Hearts to be truly thankful ; comfort my Fellow-sufferers that are immediately to follow, give them Strength and Comfort to the End : I forgive all the World, even those that have been the immediate Hastners of my Death : I am in charity with all men. A nd now, Blessed Lord Jesus, into thy Hands I commend my Spirit. Our Father which art in Heaven, hallowed be thy Name ; thy Kingdom come, thy Will be done in Earth as it is in Heaven ; give us this Day our daily Bread ; forgive us our Trespasses as we forgive them that trespass against us ; and lead us not into Temptation ; but deliver us from Evil ; for thine is the Kingdom, the Power and the Glory for ever and ever, Amen. After which going up the Ladder, he desired the Executioner not to be hard to him, who answered, No, and said, I pray, mas- ter, forgive 7ne : To which he said, I do with my whole Heart, and I pray God forgive thee; but I advise thee to leave off this bloody Trade. The Executioner said, / am forced to do what I do, it's against my Mind. So lifting up his Hands to Heaven, the Executioner did his office. 9£r* Eoffer »>atcf)eL 253 The Behaviour and Dying-Words of Mr. Roger Sat- chel, who was Executed at Weymouth in the County of Dorset. This Gentleman, at the Time of the Duke's Landing at Lyme, lived at Culliton, about five Miles West of that Town, and was supposed to be concerned in the Design with the Duke. He always was a great Admirer of him, which got him many- En emies among the Gentry of that County : He always hated the name of a Papist ; and as it fell out, he did foresee Popery advancing, as his Words to divers of his Neighbours can testifie. As for his Disposition, he was of a very Generous and Heroick Spirit. But to proceed, No sooner had he the News of the Duke's being Landed, but he sets himself to Work to serve him, desiring all he knew to join with him, and was one of the first that went to him to Lyme, and was with him to the End : But after the Rout, travelling to and fro to secure himself, was at last taken at Chard by three Moss-Troopers, under no Dis- cipline, who made it their Business to ruin their Neighbours in those parts ; they are so well known, I need not say any more. He was from thence carried to Ilchester, and so secured in Llchester Gaol ; and at the Bloody Assizes at Dorchester took his Trial, and received his Sentence with the rest. Great Appli- cation was made for him, but my L. C. Justice Jeffreys Ears were deaf, and so was ordered to be executed at Weymouth. After Sentence, two of his Friends came to him, and told hi m, There was no Hope. He answered, My hope is in the Lord. After which he spent most of his Time before Execution in Prayer and Meditation, and conferring with many good persons. The morning being come, he prepared himself, and all the Way drawing to Execution was very devout. Being come to the Place, there was a Minister, I think, of that Place, who sung a Psalm, and prayed with them, and would have some discourse with this Person, which he avoided as much as possible ; but he asked him, What were his Grounds for joining in that Rebellion ? Who answered, Had you, Sir, been there, and a Protestant,! believe you would have joined too ; but do not speak 254 ttiftt Wimtvn ^ran^actton^ to me about that, I am come to die for my Sins, not for my Treason against the King, as you call it. So pointing to the Wood that was to burn his Bowels, he said, / do not care for that; what matters it what becomes of my Body, so my Soul be at Rest? So praying to himself near half an Hour, and advising some he knew, never to yield to Popery, he was turned off the Ladder. He was a couragious, bold-spirited Man, and one of great Reason, just and punctual in all his Business, and one that did much good amongst his Neighbours. There was at the same Time and Place one Mr. Lancaster executed, whose Courage and Deportment was such, that he out braved-Death, and in a Manner Challenged it to hurt him, saying, / die for a good Cause, and am going to a Gracious God. I desire all your Christian Prayers ; 'tis good to go to Heaven with Company. And much more he spake concerning the Duke of Monmouth, whom he supposed at that Time to be living ; and so praying privately for some small Time, he was turned, or rather leaped over the Ladder. If I mistake not, he said he was born or lived in BridporL The Last Speech of Mr. Benjamin Sandford, at the Place of Execution at Bridport. He with Nine more were brought from Dorchester to Brid- port to be Executed. Coming to the Place of Execution, he held up his Hands to Heaven, and turning himself to the people, said, / am an Old Man you see, and I little thought to have ended my_ Days at such a shameful Place, and by such an ignominious Death; and indeed it is dreadful to Flesh and Blood, as well as a Reproach to Relations, but it would have been a great deal more if I had suffered for some Felonious Account. Says one to him, Is not this worse do you think than Felony /He answered, / know not any Thing that I have done so bad as Felony, that this heavy Judgment should fall upoii me, except it be for my Sins against my God, who7n I have highly provoked, and must acknowledge have deserved ten ^mttg* 255 thousand times more ; Lord! I trust thou has pardoned them; Seal my Pardon in the Blood of my Saviour; Lord, look upon y and be with me to the last Moment There was also executed at the same Time one John Bennet, a poor Man, but pious, and of good Report with his Neighbours in Lyme, where he lived. I have heard that when he was on Trial, a certain Person inform'd his Lordship, that the Prisoner, then at the Bar, had Alms of the Parish ; and that his Lordship should reply, Do not trouble yourselves, I will ease the Parish of that Trouble. In Prison, and at the Place of Execution, he be- haved himself so well to all, that many of his Enemies pitied him, and would, if it had lain in their Power, (as they said) have saved him. His Son being then present, offered to have died for him, and was going up the Ladder, if it might have been suffered. Here was a glorious instance of Filial Affection/ He prayed some short Time, and so was translated, as we have Hopes to think, from this troublesom World into Celestial Joy and Happiness. Next follow many Excellent Hymns made by several Worthy Persons that were Prisoners for the sake of Christ. Triumphing Songs with Glorious Tongues Let's offer unto him, That loved so to undergo The Product of our Sin. Leaving his Throne from Heaven came down, Sinners for to redeem From Hell, and Wrath, and second Death, Christ underwent great Pain. His Side was gor'd, his Hands were bor'd, His Feet were nailed down, And all was for the Redemption Of sinful, wicked Man. 256 Clje Qfilzguvn '3Tran0actton& Oh how straitned, prest, and pained Was Christ to be Baptized, And in Affliction to be plunged, His Body Sacrificed. Let God be blest for Jesus Christ, Who is our splendid King ; Hallelujahs sweet with Spirit meet, High Praises to him sing. For Blood, for Wounds, for Love, whose Bounds Extended unto all ; For Scoffs and Smites, for Jeers, for Flouts, Which upon Christ did fall. Now, Christ, haste unto us again, Thy Scepter for to sway, Thy Kingdom come, thy Will be done, Come, Jesus, come away. With glorious Bands and shining Trance Of Angels in the Sky, Which forth shall sing triumphing Songs With sweet Hallelujah. Set up thy Standard, and prepare War against Babylon; For her Destruction draweth near, As here we read her Doom. Lord, blow the Trumpet, and awake The Nations round about ; Stir up the Spirit of the Medes, Which did old Babel rout. For Babel must drink of that Cup Which Sion deep did wound ; Jerusalem did first begin, And so the Cup goes round. Upmnsf. 257 But Babel must drink up the Dregs Of Wrath which do remain, With which no Mixture she shall have To mitigate her Pain. For 'tis the Vengeance of our God, And of his Temple too, The Vials that fill up his Wrath, The Three last Trumpets Woe. When Jacob, as a Battle- Ax In Great Jehovah's Hand, Shall break down all those Mountains tall, That in his Way do stand. O then let us rejoice, because The Time appointed is, That Babel shall be seen to fall, And Sion shine in Bliss. Our Lord draws near, as doth appear By Signs by him fore-told ; Then, Virgins, come, meet your Bridegroom, His Wondrous Works behold. The Night grows dark, be still, and hark What is the Bridegroom's Voice ; That when the Cry comes swiftly by It may your Hearts rejoice. Your Light grows dim, arise, and trim Your Lamps from all their Soil ; And see your Light shines clear and bright, Supply'd with Gospel-Oil. Some Virgins now do sleepy grow, And don't their Vessels fill ; Nor fear a Want, when Oil grows scant, And none be found to sell, s 258 %\)t WLt&mn % transaction^ And at Mid-night, all in a Fright, Oil-shops they cannot find ; And none will spare out of his Share, And so they are left behind. Thus Foolish sleep in Dangers deep, And think their Lord delays ; But his own Bride hath surely spi'de Some of his Glorious Rays : And will not sleep, unless she keep Her Watch-lights burning still, With Oil in Store, laid up therefore ; Let him come when he will. And though her Garments had some Rents And Spots, not perfect white, Yet they ? 11 be cleansed, or quickly chang'd For Rayments of Delights. With her Bridegroom she will find Room In Chambers of his Love ; When the Unwise he will despise, And them from him remove. The Behaviour and Dying-Words of Mr. Gatchill, Executed at Taunton. The said Mr. Gatchill was a Constable of the Hundred ; he was surprised by a Party of the Duke's, and shewed a Warrant to bring in Provisions and other Necessaries for the Use of the Army, which if he had not obeyed, was threatned to have his House burnt ; so that he was obliged to do what he did for his own Preservation. But this was not sufficient, for being found guilty, he was executed. As he was drawn to Execution, he looked on the People, and said, A Populous Town, God bless 2t£r* 3|oijn ^ucfeer* 259 it. Just before he was executed, he spake, That the Crime he was accused of, and condemned for, was High-Treason, but he did not know himself to be guilty of it; a7id that what he did he was forced to do. And further said, / am so well known to you that I do verily believe you have Charity to think that what I speak is true. As for the Niceties of the Law, I do not well understand them. And much more to the same Effect he spake. And so after Prayer, with his suffering Brother, Mr. Simon Hambling, he was Executed. There was also Executed at Taunton Mr. fohn Hiicker, a very worthy Gentleman of that Town. He had some ill Friends in the Duke's Army, that cast Aspersions on him, as though he was the Person that was a Traitor to the Duke, by firing a Pistol in Sedgmoorj but I have strictly examined many on that Point, and can find it to be nothing but the worst of an Enemy's Malice, to wound him after his Death in his Reputation, which he always valued highly when living. To be short, he has left the Character, amongst his Neighbours, of an Honest Man, a good Christian, and one that was true to the Interest of the Duke, and sealed it with his Blood. The following Letter my Bookseller received from Mr. Robert Hucker now living in Taunton, which I thought proper to Print Word for Word, that so my Reader may see what Care I have taken to have all the Accounts I give concerning Mr. Hucker well attested. Mr. Dunton, Taunton, Feb. 24th, 169 1-2. Looking over the Advertisements in the Athenian Mercury, I found your Intention of making some Additions to the Book called the Bloody Assizes; and finding others that suffered with my Father, their Relations have Printed their Last Letters; I have here sent you a Letter written by my Father but some Hours before he was Executed ; the main Reason why I con- sented to have it Printed, was, That Persons Mouths may be stopt from their false and lying Accusations ; he carried himself S 2 260 %l)t aaiegstera tCcaitsfacttongf* like a Christian under Confinement j but when he came to look Death in the Face, it was with so much Courage, that it was to the Astonishment of the Beholders ; for there was many a weeping Eye amongst both Officers and Soldiers for him, and those his Fellow- Sufferers. I crave a Line from you pf the Receipt of this, with which you will oblige, Sir, Your unknown Friend and Servant, Direct to me in Taimton. Robert Hucker. Mr. John Hucker's Letter to his Friend, a little before his Execution. I was in Hopes to have had Liberty to speak a few Words at the Place of Execution, till a few Minutes since ; but now am persuaded the contrary : Therefore excuse these abrupt Lines. I bless God, I am now reconciled to this contemptible Death ; it was long e'er I could, but now God hath done; it for me, and I thankfully submit to it from the Hands of the wise God, whom I have offended : And therefore desire to accept my Punishment, knowing he doth all Things well, without any Wrong to his Creatures. I had lately some Discourse with two Persons, whereof one was of Quality, concerning the Things laid to my Charge ; I was told, that it was three Things ; one was, That I was an Enemy to, or against the Protestant Religion ; that I was troublesome, and had acted vigorously in Elections of Members for Parliament ; and upheld the Meetings. I own my self a Protestant, and die an Asserter of that Religion, and I pray God I do not prove a better Friend to it than those that have industriously endeavoured the taking away my Life, and that they see it not when it's too late. As to the Meetings, I bless God I ever was at any of them, and that I was any way instrumental to the upholding of them, and am troubled that I have, I fear, sinfully deprived myself of them, and do believe, if ever the Ordinances of God were rightly administred, and the Gospel effectually preached, it was in those Meetings that were held in Taunton j the Lord bless the Seed that was there sown. As to Elections of Members for Parliament, I judge it my Sin Account of ItfcVtf Cruelties. 261 Birthright, and therefore was Industrious in it ; but I hope never did (I am sure never intended) Troublesomness to any in it, but especially to my Superiors ; I had ever a venerable and due Esteem of Magistrates, as the Ministers of God, and they administring an Ordinance of God. I also lye under a Reproach of being unfaithful to an Interest that I owned, which I utterly deny and disown. I pray God bless and forgive my violent Enemies, that have industriously sought the taking away my Life. It's the hearty Prayer of JOHN Hucker. From Taunton-Castle, a little before he suffered, Septemb. 30th, 1685. An Impartial Account of Kirk's Cruelties, with other Barbarities in the West. Sent to the Compiler of this History, by one that was an Eye and Ear Witness to all the Matter of Fact. When Kirk came first into Taunton he came with two Cart- loads of Men Bloody, and their Wounds not drest, just as they were hauled into Bridgwater Prison, they were guarded with Granadeers with naked Swords and Bagonets. He also brought with him into Taunton, a great Drove of Foot, chain'd two and two together. He hanged Nineteen on the Corn-hill immediately, not suffering either their Wives or Children to speak to 'em, or to take their leave of 'em. As they were executing, he, Kirk, caused the Pipes to play. Drums and Trumpets to sound, that the Spectators might not hear the Cries and Groans of Dying Men, nor the Cries of their Friends. He caused their Bowels to be burnt, and their Quarters to be boiled in Pitch, and hanged all about the Town. Kirk hanged one on the White Heart Sign-post Three Times, to try if he would own he had done amiss ; but he affirmed (to this Effect) That if it was to do again, he would engage in the same Cause ; so Kirk would have him hang'd in Chains ; and so he was, till King William came to Deliverance of this Nation from Popery and Slavery. 262 %$t JLfliegttertt ^rangacttong* When Jenkins, Hewlings, &c. were to die, before they came out of the B /, there was a great Fire made on the Corn- hill, that so they might see the Fire that was to burn their Bowels. Some that Kirk caused to be hanged, he caused also their Bodies to be stript, and their Breasts to be cleav'd asunder ; in the Place where he caused the Executions to be done, you might have gone up to the Ankles in Blood; he also caused the Hearjts of the poor Executed Men to be thrown into the Fire with a great Shout, saying, Here is the Heart of a Traitor, A Captain of W was hang'd, and the Rope broke, where- by he hoped to have saved his Life ; but they took from a Market-Horse a Ring-rope, and hanged him again. At the Assizes, when the Prisoners were brought before the Bar, Jeffreys said, If any Man pleaded Not-guilty, he should die. One not concerned in Monmouth's Business, when asked, said, Not Guilty, 7ny Lord; Jeffreys said, Take him, J ay lor, and let him be executed another Time. An. Honest Man was hang'd for sparing for Monmouth's Horse three Penny worth of Hay. A Constable also was hang'd for executing of Monmouth's Warrant. And many Hundreds were put in the Castle-Hall, by which it was feared they would infect the Town. Francis Burges was taken upon Maidendown, by the Persuasion of Sir was hang'd by fastning a Rope to a Chamber- Window, and set upon a Hoget, and so hang'd. The Executioner was one S of St. Thoinas's Parish, Exon. There was, by good Report, several Scores died in Ilchester by Infectious Diseases, and in their Irons, and Hand-bolts ; for if they were not hard-hearted, and us'd the extreamest Rigour imaginable, the Keepers were not counted good Subjects. One of Welinton that was to be hanged then, was saved, supposed by Order of Sir and one of Crookern hanged in his stead ; this is true, and so it was at other Places : but 'twere endless to record all the Cruelties exercised by Kirk and Jeffreys, after Monmouth's Defeat. Now that which remains, is to give an Account of Hundreds that had fled and hid themselves up and down in Holes and Rocks, whose Friends made all Application to some great 9t£r* :25urtu 263 Person or other to procure their Pardons ; some to this, some to others, that they thought Favourites with the King ; but the Rewards must be ascertain'd before any Application could be made, (for Pardons were just as they were in Rome) according to the Ability of the Person, from Half a Crown to Sixteen Thousand Guineas ; Any Tooth, good Barber. Divers Lists being sent up, and the Rewards ascertained, which amongst many of them put together, did amount to considerable Sums. So that it was now, who could find a Friend to relieve his distressed Relations, which were forced to wander up and down in Caves and Deserts, for fear of being taken. But this Mis- fortune attended the Agents, that unless my Lord Chancellor were used, by his Creatures that were allowed by him so to do, other Applications commonly met with Disappointments. To conclude, The Solemn, Serious, Dying Declarations, and Christian Courage of the Western Sufferers, have always out- weighed with me the Evidence of those flagitious Witnesses, who swore these Persons out of their Lives. And I did, and do most steadfastly believe, that the only Plot in that Day was the same which the Almighty has at length owned, and most signally prospered, in the hand of Our Gracious, August, and Rightful Soveraign, King William ; I mean the rescuing the Protestant Religion, and the Laws and Liberties of England, from a most Impetuous Torrent of Popery and Tyranny: wherewith they were very dangerously threatned. And me- thinks it should even convert a Tory (unless his Brains were pickt out of his Skull, by him who pickt the Guineas out of his Pocket) when he cast his Eye upon that apposite and Empha- tical Expression in the Observator, Vol. 2. Numb. 125. (Co beal free toutf) tfree, TRIMMER, 31 fete more tfattft, in tfte U£orb£ of <®ne bping Traitor, un&er tfie strofte of dustier, tfjan of (Ctoentg titomg. The following Relations were written by Mr. Burd, and other West-Country Gentlemen, and were sent to be inserted in our Western Martyrology. Mr. Burd lives near Fro??ie, he gives (in a Letter hereafter inserted) a Remarkable Account of several Passages ; for he 264 %t)t WLtmvn r &wn$miom. Proclaimed the Duke of Monmouth at the Head of the Army, which was unwillingly done by the Duke then : He also saw the Maids of Honour present their Flags, and several come to kiss the Duke's Hand, as King after Proclamation, and presented a Purse of Guineas on their Knees. At this Time One Widow made a Pathetic Speech to him, and delivered her Mite. As the Army went through Pensford, a Parson came out of an Ale-house, and asked them, Gentlemen, how doth the King do? If he comes this Way to Day, I will kiss his Hand, mean- ing the Duke of Momnouth. The Parson was Indicted first on a single Indictment ; after Jeffreys had drank a Bottle of Claret, (as was his Custome) he repairs to the Bench, where being seated, the Parson was brought before him. Jeffreys reprimanded the Parson so severely at first, that the Parson was ready to sink for Fear ; but recovering himself, said — Not Guilty ; alledging he never wore Weapon, nor was in the Army, only stood by on Horseback, and view'd the Army. Jeffreys replied, There is a worse Weapon than a Sword, that is a Parson's Tongue, and declared to the Parson, that whoever stood by the Army, or gave a smile on it, was Guilty of Rebellion : (Tho ? a Smile might be in Derision). The Parson pleaded, that it was not known that the Duke would have come to Kittson half a Quarter of an Hour before he came, and that he had Business that Way, which stopp'd him, and that he was forc'd to stay and see the Encampement, but exchanged not one Word with any belonging to the Army. The Parson also urg'd, that both the Witnesses against him swore in Malice, because he had put one of 'em into the Spiritual Court for Tithes, and the other Witness he had Arrested. At last Jeffreys demanded if any Neighbouring Gentleman could give a Character of the Parson, (tho ? he lookt upon all the Gentry thereabouts as Rebels). The Parson alledg'd Captain Cox, the Fore-man of the Grand Inquest, knew him ; who was sent for. When Capt. Cox appear'd, Jeffreys askt him, If he had observed all the Ceremonies, and behav'd himself Loyally ? Captain Cox answered, He knew no ill Character of him, &c. 9$v+ Burtu 265 After this, Jeffreys summ'd up the Evidence against the Parson, but wheePd at last into this, / fear the Sin of Rebellion lurks under that Canonical Coat, I would have him hang 'd to be an Example to others. Had Burd said he heard the Parson say he would kiss the King's Hand, if he came by that Way, the Parson had certainly truss'd up. The Parson's Jury brought him in Not Guilty j upon which Jeffreys made him down on his Knees, aad bid him go, and Preach for his Sake upon that Text, Fear God and honour the King, &c. While this Parson was upon his Trial, the Court was inter- rupted with the Maids of Honour, who came hoping for Pardon ; and often the Court was interrupted with Petitions, and Certificates under the Justices Hands, to certifie that the Bearers did according to the King's Proclamation come in in Five Days, and therefore expected their Pardon. It happened one Alderman Holliday's Son was One that came in within the Five Days, and his Father offered to vindicate his Son, and to be Bail for him ; (for all that came within the Time, he made them give special Bail) Jeffreys said, He knew many Aldermen were Villains, and he hoped to beat some Furr out of their Gowns. Then he began to Trie the Two Hundred odd Men : Burd was in the Front, as their Names were called ; he made every Man shew his Face ; for if they were in Years, they had been Rebels ever since Oliver's Time, their Age tried them. But for further Confirmation of some of these Particulars, we refer you to Mr. Burd's Letter, directed to Mr. John Dunton, in these Words. Beckington, June 24th, 1702. Sir, Looking over a Book lately, Intituled, A Panegyric on the Lord Jeffreys, I find a great deal therein contained true to my own Knowledge, and therefore doubt not of all the rest, for I was One my self condemned by him at Wells Assizes, and my getting off next to a Wonder to all that heard thereof: the Particulars whereof, and the Manner how, being too long and 266 W$z ftfliegtem ^rangacttongf. tedious, I shall not trouble you therewith ; only being informed you intend to Reprint your Bloody Assises, I thought it not amiss to acquaint you with two or three of the most Material Passages that happened within the Compass of my own Know- ledge and View. When I was committed a Prisoner to , the Bath, where I lay fourteen Weeks, I found there seven and twenty more confined in a little Room, some lying on Boards, others through much Difficulty had obtained the Favour of Straw to' lye on. Among those aforementioned there was two poor Men, who lived in or about Taunton and Ilminster, whose Names were William Hussey, a Worsted Comber, I judge about seventy Years of Age ; he alledged he went into the Army to fetch home his Son, being himself past engaging in War ; Thomas Paul, I think of the same Occupation, and upwards of sixty Years old, but a Quaker. This said Hussey and Paid were never under the least Apprehension of suffering during their fourteen Weeks Imprisonment, till the very Day they were condemned, the said Hussey often times affirmed, he was never out with the Duke's Army ; and the said Paul being Unkle to a very Great Man's Chaplain at Court ; the said Chaplain was his chief Dependance, and promised him a Pardon by his Interest. Now it so happened, that the Prisoners commonly about once a Week had Liberty from their Keeper to go out of the said Prison, hand-bolted two and two, to the said Keeper's House, for an Hour or two, to divert and recreate themselves ; and commonly these two ancient Men, Hussey and Paul, were linkt together, and they would both of them generally take that Liberty, to drink till they were a little merry and brisk ; and when they return'd in that Posture to the said Prison, it would be most Times the usual Custome of William Hussey, (as soon as ever the Keeper had took off their Hand-bolts) to strike the said Thomas Paul on the Shoulder, jocosely saying, Never fear, To?n Paul, if thou and I be hang'd we'll hang Cheek by Choul ; which Expression I often times heard, though I did little think at that Time either of them would suffer ; but it so happened, that contrary to both their Imaginations they were hang'd Side by Side. The Day after they were condemed, I accidentally met with the said William Hussey, walking out in the middle of the Cloisters at Wells by himself, with his Hat 9£r* Burtu 267 over his Eyes, very melancholly, weeping, at which I was a little surprized, and ask'd what was the Matter ? He replied, with Tears in his Eyes, Ha ! Mr. Burd, I look upon my self now, and never till now, a dead Man ; you are a Young Man, and if you can get off of this Business, you may live to see many Years ; and remember that I told thee so, before the Year 88 be over, you will see all Things turn'd Upside down, and King James, for what he had done, would be turn'd out, and another would come in, and effect what was then begun ; and with a great deal of Earnestness and Zeal doubled over his Words again ; but at that Time Thinking what he so earnestly affirmed was the Effect of his Concern for his own Death, I did scarce ever recollect what he then affirmed, till 88 was over, when I saw all Things exactly happened as he before had told me. Another Passage I took Notice of among others., was, when I was at the Bar to receive my Doom, One of the Judge Jeffrey's Officers told the Judge there was One of the Maids of Honour (so call'd, because 20 or 30 of that Sex presented Flags to the Duke at Taunton after he was proclaimed King) come to surrender her self, begging Mercy at his Hands ; whom when he saw, he lookt on her with a very fierce Countenance, raving at her, &c, bid the Goaler take her, which struck such a Fear into the Poor Girl, that she pull'd her Hood over her Face, and fell a weeping; and the Goaler, according to the Command of the fierce Judge, took her away immediately out of the Court ; and, as I was afterwards informed, she died in his Custody not many Hours after for Fear, as our Lord Mayor died for Fear of Jeffreys, when brought before him. When I my self received my Sentence, there was another Young Man hand-bolted to me, whose Name was Jacob Tripp, about 21 Years of Age, and so stout and brisk, that he would almost attempt to fight a Lion : I could tell you all his Case and Circumstances as well as my own, but 'twill be too large to insert here ; only thus much I will hint about him, He was always of the Tory Party, but he fell in with Monmouth's Men ; it so happened, that after Sentence past on both of us, we were at the same Time both taken very dangerously ill, in a very malignant, infectious Feaver, during which Illness a Reprieve came for both of us for so many Days, which Days being expired, Tripp's Enemies, his Brother Tories, 268 W$z WLz&utn ^rangactfon^ (which before were his chief Confederates and Acquaintance) they said he deserved worse Usage than those who always had been such, by their unwearied Diligence had obtained an Order for his Execution, he being at that Time so ill, that he had not been sensible for near a Week before, and his Physicians gave him over for dead, and did affirm it impossible for him to live 24 Hours, yet, to shew their unbounded Rage, they immediately got him lifted out of his Bed, where he lay sensless and a dying, wrapt him up in his Sheets, laid him in a Chair, where two Men carried him to the Market-place in Wells, the Place of Exe- cution, where they hung him up, and quartered him (when he was as sensless as a Stock or Stone) before a great many Spec- tators, many of which took the Infection of his distemper, together with Abundance of the Soldiers, which caused them to die like ban'd Sheep ; and this Infection spread afterward far and near round the Country, to the Loss of a great many Peoples Lives. I could tell you more remarkable Passages, but doubting I am too large in these already mentioned, let this suffice, from Your Humble Servant unknown, John Burd. Postscript. Mr.Dunton, You may, if you please, correct this, and put it into some better Stile if you think fit ; but the Matter of Fact is all true to my Knowledge, as I have truly and impartially related the same ; for I had the Honour to be known to the Duke of Monmouth before he came into England on that unhappy Expedition, which made my getting a Pardon so difficult, that had there not some Disgust happened between some great Men concerning me, scarce any Price would have purchased it ; for thus it was, That very Night the Rout was, being on a Sunday about 8 of the Clock, there came a Foot-messenger to the Duke into the Field near Bridgwater, and gave him an Account what Posture the King's Forces (then at Weston on the Edge of Sedgmore) lay in ; the Duke gave him a Gratuity, and sent him back again to make a further Discovery, and bring a further Account there'of, but he was unfortunately taken ; and returned no more ; upon which the $$?. ©urtu 269 Duke riding into the Town, his Horse in a very strange and un- usual Manner threw him, which I often times since thought was Ominous : About 1 1 a Clock at night the Army marcht out of Bridgwater toward Weston, which proved a Fatal Night. The Night after, being Monday Night, I was taken about 20 miles distant at a By- Ale-house, with two Young Men, (one a Lon- doner) our Horses being carried to Bath, and we to be sent after with a Guard ; but I, having an Opportunity, got off, and left my Comrades behind, who I understood did also follow my Example ; but being taken again the same Day, and delivered into the hands of a Roman Catholick, he took Care, and conveyed me to Wells before the Lord F , who with the King's Army was arrived there from Sedgmore; his Lordship being prepossest against me, would hear nothing at all ; I offered to speak, but told me, / should be hang'd, dr*c. and immediately sent me a Prisoner to the Lower Church in Wells, which was then full of the same sort of Spark ; and under a Multitude of Passages that happened, too tedious to relate, I had not been there above two Days and Nights, but I was unexpectedly released, by Means of the Bishop of W r, who had obtained my Lord F 9 s Consent ; so then I had a Pass given me under the Hand and Seal of the Lord Bishop, by Order and Consent of the said Lord F , to require all Officers, Civil and Military, to suffer me to pass to my Place of Abode ; notwithstanding which (as I was in my Journey) I was again seiz'd, and hurried away to Bath, and there had before another great Man, which was exasperated against me also by the Information of some Enemies, that had told him how great a Rebel I had been, and that I had proclaimed the Duke King in the Presence of four thousand Men, &c, which appearing so very visible by their offering to swear it, the said Great Man in a Fury told me, he would secure I should be hang'd, notwithstanding my Pass ; and so sent me to the Common Goal in Bath, where I remained about 14 Weeks, and then was had to Wells, and there condemn'd. But I had forgot to men- tion, that as soon as I was committed to Bath Prison, I sent a Messenger to Wells, to acquaint the Bishop of W r, that notwithstanding his and my Lord F 9 s Pass, I was again re- committed to Bath Prison ; which he seemed to be much con- cerned thereat : but in the End I was given to a Pardon-monger, 270 %$t Qfilz&tmx Crangfactton^. and he made his Market upon me, tho' afterwards I was told (when too late) that the Judge had Instructions from above, that I should not suffer. When I was at the Bar, it was in the front of above 200 more, that all received Sentence together ; unto whom the Judge made a Speech of above an Hour long, to wheedle them all into a Confession, by quoting Places of Scrip- ture, to set forth the Hainousness of their crime of Rebellion ; and then comes with a long Harangue, telling us how merciful the King was, and how ready he was to shew Mercy to the worst of us j in which he had this lofty Expression (which I remember I did not then believe) Nay, says he, (and thumps the cushion) I had almost said, the King is more ready to forgive, than you were to rebel. Amongst the Barbarous and Inhumane Actions mentioned in the preceding Sheets, there having been but very little mentioned of the Illegal Whipping-Sentences, pronounced by the merciless Judge, or rather Hang-man, Jeffreys j the Editors of this Edi- tion have procured a Relation of the said Whipping-Sentences, from a Gentleman that was a Prisoner in Dorchester Goal, and saw the Execution of them upon the persons sentenc'd ; which in short are as follows : The Case, Trial, and Sentence of Mr. John Tutchin, and several others, in Dorchester, in the County of Dorset. We must put Mr. John Tutchin, a Young Gentleman of Hamp- shire, in the Front of the Persons sentenc'd to be whipped, for perhaps no History can parallel the Sentence given against him. This Young Gentleman had the Misfortune, with many others of his Acquaintance, to be in the Interest of the Duke of Mon- mouth, but had a better Fortune than many of 'em, by conceal- ing his Name : For when he was taken a Prisoner by the Country Guard, he was committed to Prison under the borrowed Name of Thomas Pitts, and his real Name was not discovered till after he was acquitted of the Rebellion, no person appearing as evidence against him. Q$t. 3|ofm ^utrtjm- 271 But Jeffreys having discovered his true Name before Mr. Tutchin was gone from the Prison, was resolv'd upon Re- venge, and said he was never so far outwitted, by an Old or Young Rogue in his Life ; and after he had examined Mr. Tutchin to many Particulars, by which Mr. Ttitchin knew that Jeffreys had a true Account of him ; for he told him the Time when he was in Holland, the very place where he lodg'd there, the Manner of his coming over, and the Name he went by at that time ; and finding that Mr. Tutchin would not answer to some Questions he ask'd him, concerning some Gentlemen in Hampshire, who were concerned with Mr. Tut- chin in raising some men at Lymington, for the Service of the Duke of Monmouth, I say, after this, he was resolved to try Mr- Tutchin again. But Mr. Tutchin still pretended Ignorance in these Matters to his Prison-keeper, who was set upon Mr. Tutchin by Jeffreys, to bring him to a Confession ; but the Goal-keeper, whose Name was Knapton, tho' he seem'd an Enemy to the Duke's Men colour'd many Things that might have taken away the Lives of several, and did what he could to allay the Heat of the implac- able Judge. Having given no ill Character of this Goaler, Mr. Knapton, it may be a pardonable Digression, to tell the Reader something of another, which I had from the Mouth of Mr. Tutchin : When Richardson, the Keeper of Newgate, brought down the Hewlings, and some other Gentlemen, to Dorchester against the Assizes, the said Richardson drinking with another Goaler, said, Come, Brother, here's to our good Health ; this is our Time to make our Fortunes, and now we must lay aside all Humanity, for no Compassion is to be shown to these Dogs. But to return to Mr. Tutchin, he was brought up again to the Hall ; but Jeffreys not caring to indict him for Rebellion, pre- tended that the Crime of changing his Name deserved a severe Sentence ; and thereupon passed Sentence as follows : That he should remain in Prison during the Space of Seven Years j that once every year he should be whipt thro 1 all the Market Towns in Dorsetshire ; that he should pay a Fine of one hundred Marks to the King, and find Security for his good Behaviour during Life. This, you will say, was a Whipping-Sentence indeed. 272 %l)t ftfliegtem <<3rran0actton0* It was observable, when this Sentence was past upon Mr Tutchin, that the Ladies in the Court, of which there were a great many, all burst out a crying ; but Jeffreys turning towards them, said, Ladies, if you did but know what a Villain this is, as well as I do, you would say, this Sentence is not half bad enough for him. Upon passing the Sentence, the Clerk of the Arraigns stood up, and said, My Lord, there are a great many Market Towns in this County, the sentence reaches to a Whipping about once a Fortnight, and he's a very young Man. Aye, says Jeffreys, he's a Young Man, but he 's an old Rogue; and all the Interest in England shanH reverse the Sentence I have past upon him. But certainly no Devil incarnate could rage, nor no Billings- gate Woman could scould worse than this Judge did at this young Gentleman whilst he was at the Bar ; he call'd him a thousand Rogues and Villains, told him that he was a Rebel from Adam, that never any of his Family had the least Loyalty ; and, said he, / understand you are a Wit and Poet, pray, Sir, let you and I cap Verses. Mr. Tut chin smiPd in his Face, and told him, He knew upon what Ground he stood, and when he was over?natch?d. Lying under this Barbarous sentence, Mr. Tutchin's Friends endeavoured to persuade him to sue for a pardon ; but he utterly refused it, and drew up a Petition with his own Hand, which was presented to the King at Winchester, and was as follows : To the King's Majesty. The Humble Petition of John Tutchin of Lymington in the County of Southampton, Gent 9 , now a Prisoner in the County Goal of Dorset. Sheweth, That your Petitioner now lies in this Prison under sentence of the Lord Chief Justice Jeffreys, To remain in the said Prison during the Space of Seven years, that once every Year he shall be whipt through all the Market Towns in Dorsetshire, 9$r* 3fof)rt ^utcfjfm 273 that he shall pay a Fine of one hundred Marks to the King, and find Security for his good Behaviour during Life. That this Sentence was past upon your Petitioner under pre- tence of his having changed his Name, and no Matter of Treason or Rebellion being proved upon him. That your Petitioner has always demeaned himself according to his Duty required by Law, and that he is ready to venture his Life in Defence of a Lawful King, that shall govern according to Law, in preservation of the Liberties of Englishmen. That he humbly conceives, the Sentence pass'd upon him by the said Jeffreys is worse than death ; and therefore Humbly prays your Majesty will be Mercifully pleas'd to grant him the Favour of being hang'd with those of his Fellow-Prisoners, that are condemned to die ; and till then Your Petitioner shall ever pray, &*c. John Tutchin. And underneath his Name were written these Words — Malim, mori quam vapulari. You may see by this Petition, that Mr. Tutchin was a young Man when he wrote it ; for many Exceptions were made against it : To the King's Majesty, instead of the King's most Excel- lent Majesty ; and you may be sure, the Western Hangman did not overlook his calling of him plain Jeffreys in the Body of the Petition. But the Court esteem'd it a barbarous Sentence ; and it's said, the King esteem'd it no less. But all the Answer could be got, was from the Lord Stmderland, That Mr. Tutchin must wait with Patience. Mr. Tutchin hereupon endeavoured to get a Pardon from the People who had Grants of Lives, many of ; em 500, some 1,000, more or less, according as they had Interest in the King ; but Jeffreys would not so much as hear his Name mentioned, and the Sentence was order'd to be executed. Four or Five Days before the Execution of the Sentence, a Brother in Law of Mr. Tutchins, a Physician, persuaded him to take a Dose of Physick to make himself sick, by which Means the Execution might be put off, and perhaps in that Time some Means might be found for his Enlargement : He took the Dose, T 274 ^&* 9Zlle0tern <3Dran0action& and in three or four Days trie Small-pox came out very thick upon him, no Man ever had 'em to a higher D,egree ; and in that Condition he lay by himself in Prison, no Body to look after him but his Fellow-Prisoners, for there being a Pestilential Dis- temper in the Prison, of which some Scores died every Week, Jhe Magistrates of the Town would not suffer any Communication with the Prisoners. Mr. Tutchin lying in this miserable Condition, and his Life being dis'pair'd of, his Friends work'd the easier with Jeffreys to get the Sentence reversed, which some People would have believed a Sign of Repentance in Jeffreys, had he not taken the Money himself. After Mrs. Tutchin had done this last kind Office for her Son, she sickned of the Small-pox, and died, his Brother and two Sisters fell sick of the same Distemper ; so that when Mr. Tutchin had Friends allow' d to come to him, like Job's Com- forters, they brought him the Tidings that his Mother was dead, and all the Relations he had in the World were a dying, and that they had contracted for a Pardon for more Money than he was worth, for a Life which he never valued. So he was popt into a Pardon amongst others ; for 'twas usual at that Time for one Courtier to get a Pardon of the King for half a Score, and then by the Assistance of Jeffreys to augment the Sum to Four- score or an Hundred, and so this unfortunate Gentleman fortunately got out of his Broil. But we must not leave Mr. Tutchin here, tho' what afterwards we shall say of him, does not relate to what was transacted in the West, yet it may not be amiss to show how the Provi- dence of God does often change the Face of Things, and alter the Circumstances and Conditions of Men, so that those who boast of their Power, and exercise their Authority with the greatest Severity, many Times become the Scorn and Contempt of those they have triumph 'd over: Who could have thought, when Jeffreys past that Sentence on Mr. Tutchin in the West, that ever Mr. Tutchin should see that wicked Judge a Prisoner, apprehended by the injur'd People, and committed by a Tool of his own Party ? Yet it so hapned. For Jeffreys endeavouring to make his Escape beyond Sea in a Sailor's Habit, was discovered by one, to whom he had done some Acts of Injustice, and was taken in Anchor-and-Hope- Alley apt;* 3[of)tt Cutcfjfiu 275 in Wapping, and by the Mob carried before the Instrument of Popery, Sir J C- , then Lord Mayor of the City of London, and by him committed to the Tower. Mr. Tutchin hearing of this, went to give his Lordship a Visit; who did not know Mr. Tutchin at first, he being much altered with the Small-pox ; but Jeffreys understanding who he was, told him, He was glad to see him : Mr. Tutchin answered, He was glad to see hi7n in that Place. Jeffreys returned, That Time and Place happened to all Men, and that when a Man was born, he knew not what Death he should die, nor what his Circum- stances should be in this Life, and Abundance of such Cant ; but added, That he had served his Master very faithfully, according to his Conscience. Mr. Tutchin ask'd him, Where his Conscience was when he past that Sentence on him in the West ? Jeffreys said, You are a Young Man, and an Enemy to the Government, and might live to do Abundance of Mischief; and Hw as part of my Instructions, to spare no Man of Courage, Parts, or Estate; but withal added, That his Instructions were much more severe than the Execution of them, and that at his Return he was snub'd at Court for being too merciful. So after he had treated Mr. Tutchin with a Glass of Wine, Mr. Tutchin went away. Soon after this, Jeffreys had a Barrel of Oysters sent him to the Tower, which he caused to be opened, saying, He thantfd God he had some Friends left. But when the Oysters were tumbled out on the Table, a Halter came out with them, which made him change his Countenance, and so palFd his Stomach, that he could eat none of them. This was confidently reported to be done by Mr. Tutchin; but I having heard him protest that he was not in the least concerned therein, we must believe it to be done by another Hand. The Second in the List of Persons sentenced to be whipt, is one William Wiseman, a Boy of about 14 or 15 Years of Age, at that time an Apprentice to a Barber at Weymouth. It seems the Duke of Monmouth's Declaration was put up in that Town in the Night time, and some People who could not read, finding it in the Morning, took it down, and this Boy, being by, read it to them. This was his Crime, for which Jeffreys sentenc'd him to be whipt through all the Market Towns in Dorsetshire. T 2 276 %\)t a&legteni ^rangacttong* Sentence was accordingly executed first at Dorchester, where in Consideration of the Boy's Age he was whipt more gently than some People thought convenient. Upon which a Clergy-man of the Church of England, named Blanchard, came to the Goaler, and reviFd him, saying, He would do his Business for him with the Lord Chief Justice, for shamming his Sentence, in not whipping the Boy half enough. The Goaler breaking out in a Passion said, You talk of the Cruelties of the Popish Priests, but commend me to a Church of England Priest for Cruelty : They are like the Country Justices, who won't believe a Man is burnt in the Hand unless they can see a Hole through it. Whether this Parson made the Complaint, or no, is uncertain; but sure it is, Complaint was made, and the Boy was order'd to be whipt again the Morrow following the Day he was whipt before ; which, to please this Parson and Jeffreys, was done to that Degree, that the Boy fell into a Feaver, which was likely to have cost him his Life. After Jeffreys had left the Country, he was whipt thro' the Town of Weymouth, and there the Sentence terminated. The Third in this List was one Edward Jervaise, a Hatter of Milbourn Port. This Man, it seems, being in some Company, happen'd to say, that he had a Monmouth in his Heart. Upon which he was apprehended, and sent to Dorchester Goal. This Man was a Criminal in another Respect, which was enough to hang any at that Time of Day ; for he had three or four Uncles and other Relations in the Duke's Army. I was told one of his Uncles, being taken a Prisoner by Kirk, was immediately order'd to be hang'd up, but being a brave stout Man, some of KirKs Officers interceded for his Life, which Kirk was willing to grant, provided he would acknowledge his Rebellion ; which he re- fused to do : At length they would release him if he would say, God bless King James, which he also refus'd ; and so was hang'd, and the last Words he said, was, God bless the Duke of Mon- mouth. His Nephew Edward, when he came into Court, could not deny, that he had Monmouth in his Heart, and thereupon was Sentenced to be whipt through all the Market Towns in Dorset- shire, paying a Fine to the King. 2t£r* 3lo!)ix ^utcfjin. 277 Upon passing of the Sentence, he steps to Mr. Tutchin, (then in Court, and who had received Sentence before him) and said, Master, I understand the Jig we are to dance well enough j but what must we pay this Money for f Mr. Tutchin answered, You never knew People dance without Musick, and this Money is ordered to pay the Fidlers. Nay, then, says Jervaise, His well enough j and went away with the least Concern that could be. He was whipt through Dorchester and his own Town, and no more. The next was a Woman of Lyme, who kept an Ale-house, and brew'd her own Drink. Two or three Days after the Duke of Monmouth landed, the Excise-Officers came to her House to collect the Duties, but she refus'd it, and said, She would pay no more Excise till the Duke of Monmouth was King of England. For which Crime she was sentenc'd to be whipt through all the Market Towns in Dorsetshire, and was whipt through Dorchester and Lyme, and no farther. For when Jeffreys was gone out of the Country, the Justices were not so severe, and conniv'd at the Gaolers stopping Part of the Sentences. There was another in Dorchester Prison, that was alike sentenc'd to be whipt : he profess'd himself to be an Astrologer and Physician, but was very unluckily misled by the Stars into the Country at this Time ; for coming to a Corporation Town to vend his Physick, and tell Fortunes ; the People not knowing but that he was a Conjuror indeed, desired him to consult the Stars about the Fate of the Duke of Monmouth then in Arms : he erected his Scheme, and found that King James would be ruin'd and undone, and that the Duke of Monmouth would happen to be King in a short Time, which coming to the Magis- trates' Ears, they committed him to Prison, where he erected another Scheme concerning his own Fate, when he found by the Stars that he would be whipt at the Cart's Arse for erecting his former Scheme ; which proving true, he could not say that the Stars always deceiv'd him. Thus I have given you a short Account of the Whipping- sentences in Dorchester, which Sentences, together with some others executed before that Time, were made one Article against the late King James upon the Revolution, and are included in 278 %ty Mzgmn ^rangactiortg* the Bill of Rights j so that no King of England for the future can be guilty of such illegal Barbarities without Reflection on the Fate of that unhappy Monarch. In this Prison at one Time there was in one Room Nineteen young Gentlemen, and not one of 'em 21 Years of age, and alLof them hang'd, except Mr. Tutchin. In this Prison was Major Holmes, who had been a Lieutenant- Colonel in the Duke of Monmouth's Service ; he was taken a prisoner after the Phillipsnorton Fight, and though his Arm was shot to pieces, so that it hung but by a piece of Flesh, the bar- barous Soldiers stript him stark naked, and carried him before a Justice of Peace, who being at Dinner, ordered him to be kept till he had dined. The Servants got the Colonel into the Kitchen, and gave him some Cloaths to cover his Nakedness, and some Refreshments ; in which Time the Colonel laying his scattered Arm on the Dresser, with the Cook-maid's Knife cut off his Arm with his own Hand. I mention this Gentleman, because perhaps there was never more Indignity offered to Grey Hairs and real Worth, than in the Person of this Colonel Holmes. One Day he was sitting in a little Garden in the Prison with the Hewlings and about three more young Gentlemen, when a certain Lord, well known at that Time, came and insulted him, and told him, It was a shame to see an old man among a Parcel of Boys. Mr. Tutchin told his Lordship, That the worst Boy there dtcrst fight him for his Life. Said the Colonel, My Lord, these are boys, but they are brave Boysj and let me be well mounted in the head of these Boys, we'll fight for our Lives your Lordship in the Head of the best Troop of Guards. The Indignities offer'd by that Lord was far beneath a Gentleman, and suitable to the Courage he show'd in the late King's Service ; but when he went from this Company to the Common side, he was there as much insulted by one Furrard, a Highway-man, who call'd him a thousand Rogues, Villains, and Cowards. Indeed the Usage of the Prisoners was barbarous enough, the Goalers were forc'd to show them up to every little Fellow in Authority, so that they were daily insulted, and paid dear enough for every Thing they had ; but what was most barbarous, they would not allow their Relations to come to them in the Time of Si l&etrogpect, $c* 279 their sickness, so that many died for want of Help in a Pesti- lential Distemper, the like perhaps was never known. The Small- pox at that Time was the worst that was known, very few re- covered of it. Mrs. Mary Blake, a young Lady of Taunton, who was committed to this Prison for making the Colours pre- sented to the Duke of Monmouth, died of this Distemper, to the great Grief of her Family: as did several others. But the greatest Persecutors and Insulters of these poor People were the Country Parsons : They did not preach to the Spirits in Prison, but they revil'd e'm. One of 'em, when he heard some condemned Persons in Prayer just before their Ex- ecution, said, These Fellows will pray the Devil out of Hell j and the Prison was seldom free of the Black- Coats. But, Thanks be to God, we now speak of these Things only, and don't see 'em : and that those who are now living, though they have lost their Estates, yet they see what they contended for, I mean their Liberty and Property established. Thus have we given you an Account of what happened in the WEST (in the Year 85), being in every Point Truth ; we shall next give a short Touch of the Civilities the poor Sufferers received from the City of Exon, which deserves an everlasting Remembrance : Most sorts of Provisions, as hot Broth, boyled Meat, roast Meat, divers sorts of Pies, were daily sent into the Prison ; the Persons that sent them unknown to them. Also if any Person was sick, there should be a Nurse to attend him ; also a Physician and Chyrurgeon to attend when Occasion was. 'Tis said, He that giveth to the Poor, lendeth to the Lordj the Lord return them an Hundredfold. Thus, Reader, by the Help of God, we are come to an End of our long Journey, from the Year 1678 to 1685. The Way all along has been full of Dirt and Blood, and therefore no Wonder if the Wheels have driven somewhat heavily. 'Twill be worth thy while as well as mine, to look upon the different Stages we have taken, which is one of the greatest Pleasures of a Traveller, who finds Delight in reflecting even on that which formerly gave him Pain and Trouble. He who first broke the Way, was 280 %\)t Witmvn Crangacttong* Sir Edmund-bury Godfrey, according to his own Prophesie, That he should be the #ir£t .JjBartpt. Mr. Arnold was like to follow him, but that intended stroke not coming home enough, they resolved to lay the Foundation firmer, and so struck lower, and began with Stephen Colledge at Oxford, who before his Death, said, That it tuotffc not stop t&ere, nor his Death satisfie those who thirsted after Blood; as appeared plain enough, when they had.got a Plot and Plotters to their Minds, who made it their Business, as Walcot tells Cartwright, to invite Men to their Meetings, to importune 'em to their Meetings, as it appears, to talk madly and treasonably at those Meetings, and because they were a little too brave to do the same by them, after all to deliver them up to be hang'd for coming thither, by which Design many of the boldest Patrons of their Country and Religion were destroyed ; to whose Death an infamy was added greater than that of those who publickly suffered. Russel follow'd but too closely after him, who says in his Speech, He wishes the Rage of hot Men and particular Juries might be stopt with his Blood, which he would offer up with much 7nore Joy, if he thought he should be the Last that were to suffer in such a Way. About the same Time died Walcot, and some others. Col. Sidney came after, one of the first that ever lost his Head by Innuendo's, and who died, as he was told, because else the Plot must have died. Holloway came next, brought from f other world to be hang'd in this ; whose ingenuous Con- fession did his Business, there being too many bold Truths in't, which some Men could not bear, for him ever to expect a Pardon. But how many Lies besides there might be in his Confession, or others, 'tis impossible to know, unless we knew, not only whose Hands they came through, but how they were used. And as he from another World, so Armstrong was brought from another Country, to be paid for all his Service to the Royal Family, in their Exile and afterwards. And tho' he was not hang'd first, and trfd afterwards, yet what's much the same, was ha?tg'd without ever being try'd at all. Next to this we took a View of the Design of that unfortunate Gentleman who landed in the West, and of those who embark'd in it, and how far they were justifiable ; where follows a particular Account of some of the most eminent amongst 'em, and a more general one & l&etrogfpect, $c* 281 of the rest ; which though it might have perhaps been more accurate, yet 'twas thought better to keep near those loose Papers already publish'd on that Matter, of which this Book is a sort of a second Edition j and to give that Account in the same inartificial Dress which 'twas delivered in by some honest Country-men, who were personally present at most of the Actions and Sufferings there mention'd. And among all these, nothing is more remarkable than what we have taken particular Notice of. The strong Persuasion and Belief in which almost all of e'm dy'd, That God would accomplish the great Work of delivering their Country and Religion some other Way, though he was not pleased to accept of their Endeavours. At the Return from the Western Circuit, that London might have a little sprinkling of their Mercy, the pious and prudent Mr. Cornish .was sacrificed ; all whose Time of Preparation for that which must be call'd his Trial, was from Saturday to Mon- day, whose Courage and Constancy at his Death, and that dreadful Storm which spoke the Displeasure of Heaven in such loud Language after ; twas over, were as much the Wonder of England, as the next and last merited their Pity, poor Bateman, who had intirely lost his Reason by his Imprisonment, and the Accidents thereof. But besides all these, and some others, there were some who had Trials of Cruel Mockings and Scourgings, were expos'd in the Pillory, and worse than whipt to Death, though sometimes even that not thought sufficient, without actual Assassination. Upon the intire Review of all this dreadful Scene of Blood and Horror, especially that relating to the Western Affairs, what can be a more natural and useful Reflection, than for us hence to learn, by Wounds of our own, yet green and bleeding, the true undissembled Kindness of prevailing Popery, and Popish Councils, and what all Protestants, of what Character and Denomination soever, must expect thence, when rampant and powerful? How can we chuse but see, unless we have winkt our selves quite blind, that the Hand of the same Joab has been in all this ? That 'twas the famous D. of Y., who was at first as deep in Godfreys Murther, as in the Fire of London j the same who was at Helm all along after, and as good as man- aged the Executioners' Axes and Halters for so many Years. 282 <3p&e Wlt&mn %van$attion$+ 'Twas he who was so near at Essex's Murther, and who hindered so carefully my L. Russel from his Pardon ; who was the Staff, the Hope, the Moses, the Gideon of the Popish Plot and Party, and the eager and inveterate Enemy to the very Name of a true Protestant. He who shewed so much Mercy to the poor West- Country Men, Women, and Children, destroying so many Hundreds in cold Blood, and hardly sparing one Man that could write and read, by his L. Chief Hangman, Jeffreys. Lastly, he who was falling upon his own best Friends, who are now sensible they lov'd him to a Fault, and carried their Loyalty to such a H eighth for his Service, as is now better for- gotten, since no Party can entirely clear themselves even of that Imputation. He who fell upon them, and our Religion and Laws, and whatever was dear to us, with the greatest and most open Violence ; and because he could not have his Will, and be a French King in England, resolv'd to leave us to the Mercy of his own unkenelPd Irish, and go to France, to be there as Absolute a Slave as he here would have made us. And yet this is the self-same Person whose pretended Son some are still so zealous for, as if they had not yet had enough of Popery. But whilst these Haters of themselves, as well as their Religion and Country, must be left to Man's Justice and God's Vengeance, let's address the Conclusion of these Papers to all True Honest Men, of good Principles, and firm to the Protestant Religion, and persuade them to pray heartily for our Glorious Queen ANNE, and Fight for her as heartily too, as all these Martyrs, no doubt, would gladly have done. If some of them should not be entirely satisfied with whatever has happened in this great Change, yet to remember at the lowest the Diity of Subjects; to think all the Nation may see more than they ; to pay Allegiance where they find Protection ; to reflect on our almost too happy Condition, compared with that of Germany, Italy, &c, and where-ever the French and Popish Arms and Counsels prevail : to honour the Memory of these Martyrs, who suffered for their vigorous Appearance against them ; and lastly, to thank God sincerely and in good Earnest, that we may now, if Occasion be, defend our Religion and Liberties with our Swords, which they could only do by laying down their Lives. AN IMPARTIAL HISTORY OF THE LIFE AND DEATH OF GEORGE Lord JEFFREYS, LATE LORD CHANCELLOR OF ENGLAND. TO GEORGE Lord JEFFREYS, LATE Lord Chancellour of England. MY LORD, KNOW not to whom I could more properly Dedicate a Treatise of this Nature than to your Lordship, who lately was Lord Chief Justice of England, and have set such Presidents to inferior Magistrates. What is here offered, may serve as a Mirrour, into which future Adminis- trators of Publick Justice would do well to look ; for you may remember, my Lord, if your Lordship's present Afflictions have not made you forget as much Law as you ever learned) Common Law runs much upon Presidents : And if a Man happen to have none of the best Physiognomy, there is no Reason why he should streight grow angry, and fling Stones to break all the Looking- Glasses he meets with, only because they represent the true Figure of the Object. My Lord, The following Treatise is a true Account of your Lordship's Life and Actions (most of which are ready to be attested) of your unheard-of Cruelties and barbarous Proceed- ings in your whole Western Circuit : In which all may see at what a dear Rate our Western Martyrs purchased their Religion, and how it cost those Glorious Sufferers, who so lately went off the Stage (under your Lordship's Sentence) both Whippings and cruel Imprisonments, and the most exquisite Tortures which none could invent nor inflict but your Lordship, (whose 286 Wi\z Qgptgtle 3DeDtcator^ good Nature is sufficiently experienced) nor any endure but those whose Gallant and Noble Souls were born up with Heavenly Cordials and a Power from on high. But, my Lord, rest assured, that their Blood still cries for Vengeance, and will be a lasting Monument of your Lordship's Cruelties, whilst History can speak or transmit to Posterity the Remarkables of elapsed Ages ; for to Hang, Draw, and Quarter, and Try Men afterwards, (witness Sir Thomas Armstrong's Death, dr^c.) has been your peculiar Talent. But your Lordship will now at last do well to remember that King Alfred caused Forty Four Judges in One Year to be hang'd as Murderers, for their false Judgments. I hope your Lordship will pardon this present Address, seeing 'tis a Priviledge we modern Authors hold by Prescription, to put any Great Man's Name in the Front of our Book : Princes have not been able to exempt themselves or their Families from the Persecution of Dedications; nor ever was there (I humbly conceive) any Rule made in your Lordship's Court to prohibit them. Suffer then, I beseech your Lordship, this Address to remain a Monument to Posterity, of the Sentiments this Age has of your Lordship's Conduct and Merits ; and Witness to all the World how much its Author is Your Lordship's Humble Servant, JAMES BENT. A POEM Dedicated to the MEMORY OF GEORGE Lord JEFFREYS. CANNOT hold, hot struggling Rage aspires, And crowds my free-born Breast with noble Fires ; Whilst prudent Fools squeak Treason through the Nose, And whine a quivering Vote in sneaking Prose My Muse soars out of Reach, and dares despise What e'er below attempts to Tyrannize, Though I by some base Nero should be clad In such a Gown as the old Christians had, In Clouds of Satyr up to Heaven Pd roul, For he could burn my Shell but not my Soul. Though Nature her auspicious Aid refuse, Revenge and Anger shall inspire my Muse : Nature has given me a complaining Part, And murdered Protestants a resenting Heart. Then Room for Bloody Jeffreys, or he'll swear By all the Afts from St. Cadwalladar ; Prutus hur creat Cranfather, if hur enquire, And Adam's Cranfather was Prutus s Sire. Famous ab Shenkin was hur elder Brother, Some Caledonian Sycorax hur Mother : 288 sl $ozm to tlje pernor? Or some she De'il more damn'd than all the rest, At their black Feast hur lustful Sire comprest : Thence do I think this Cacodemon rose, Whose wrathful Eyes his inward Baseness shows ; His Shape is all inhuman and uncouth, But yet he's chiefly Devil about the MOUTH j With Care this Brat was nurs'd for fear it shou'd Grow tame, and so degen'rate into good, With City Charters he was wrapp'd about, And Acts of Parliament for Swaddling-clout : As he grew up, he won a Noble Fame, For which Squire Ketch hath sworn him publick Shame. And won't it be a pretty Sight to see't, The Hang-man, Rope, and Bloody Jeffreys meet ? Jeffreys, who cherisht Spite, as all can tell ; Jeffreys, who was the darling Brat of Hell. Oft with Success, this mighty Blast did bawl, Where loudest Lungs, and biggest Words win all ; And still his clenched Arguments did end With that home-thrust, He is not Caesar's Friend, Sometimes, that jaded Ears he might release, Good Man ! he has been fee'd to hold his Peace. Hear him, but never see him, and you'd swear He was the Crier, not the Counseller ; He roars, as if he only chanc'd to find Justice was now grown deaf, as well as blind, This Demy-Fiend, this Hurricane of Man, Was sent to butcher all i' th' West he can. 'Twas him the Popish Party wisely chose To splutter Law, and the dinn'd Rabble pose ; They have a thousand Tongues, yet he can roar Far louder, tho' they had a thousand more, Unto long-winded Cook he scorns to go, But pleads, His Majesty will have it so. He's for all Mischief set, by Nature bred ; He rails at all before him, and is fed Hyama-like, by tearing up the Dead. Th' unluckiest Satyrist alive, that still Writes his own Character in all that's ill. of (Bzovq! %orD 3[effr^0. 289 Of all the World most fit a Vice t'expose, That all its Cause, Effects, and Motions knows, Stranger to none can no Advantage lose. Big with Conceit the empty Shape looks great. His own dear self obligingly doth treat ; Rewards his Soul in any Garb will lap, His ductile Soul will put on any Shape : Vice hath his Patronage, and there's no Fear, But Hell in time may his Protection share, The rather 'cause the God of Gold is there. He courts loud Rumour, but lets Truth alone, Conscious of Guilt, he shuns being justly known, And by's oft changing flyes a Definition Learn'd, but in 111 ; Ingenious, but in Spite ; Virtuous ,by Accident, by Chance a Wit ; Modest when Beat ; in Suffering Valiant ; Honest when Forc'd ; and Moderate when in Want ; True, but for Interest ; Civil but for Dread ; Devout for Alms ; and Loyal, but for Bread. Thy Mushroom Greatness I dare now arraign, For all thy Hectoring now will be in vain. Here, take this Pass, ere we for ever part ; Then run, and then fare well with all my Heart. The Lawyers yelling in their feign'd debate, And the fleec'd Client's Wisdom, all too late ; The keeping Cully's Jealousie and Care, The slighted Lover's Maggots and Despair ; A Woman's Body every Day to dress, A fickle Soul, little as theirs, or less ; The Courtier's Business, the Impudence o' th' Stage, And the defeated Father Peter's Rage ; A Clock-work Spouse with loud eternal Clack, A Shop i' th Change still ty'd to What d'ye lack ? Worse than these last, if any Curses more Ovid e'er knew, or fiercer Oldham } s store ; 'Till not one Part in Body or Soul be free. May all their barbed Vengeance show'r on thee : Pressed with their weight, long may'st thou raving lye, Envying an Halter, but not dare to die ; u 290 si poem to tfje Memory, $c* And when condemn'd thou dost thy Clergy plead, Some frightful Fiend deny thee Power to read ; Madness, Despair, Confusion, Rage, and Shame Attend you to the Place fro7n whence you came : To Tyburn thee let Carrion Horses draw, In jolting Cart, without so much as straw ; Jaded, may they lye down i' th' the road, and tirM, And (worse than one fair Hanging) twice beimYd, May'st thou be maul'd with Pulcher's Sexton's Sermon, 'Till thou roar out for Hemp-sake, Drive on, Car-man ; Pelted and Curst i' th' Road by every one, E'en to be hang'd may'st thou the Gauntlet run. Not one good Woman who in Conscience can Cry out — Tis pity — Troth, a proper Man. Stupid and dull, may'st thou rub off like Hone* Without an open or a smother'd Groan : May the Knot miss the Place, and fitted be To plague and Torture, not deliver thee ; Be half a Day a dying thus, and then Revive like Savage, to be hanged agen. In Pity now thou shalt no longer live; For when thus satisfy* d } I can forgive. JOHN CARTER. KHT^S 181 kS^SSii THE LIFE and DEATH OF GEORGE Lord JEFFREYS. EADER, Think it not strange if I present you with the memorable Life and Actions of a Person so well known in this great Kingdom : And peradventure Fame has not been silent in other Countries, especially since he has been advanced to be a Chief Minister of State, and sat, as it were, steering at the Helm of Government. Various indeed are the Changes of worldly Affairs, and the Actions of Humane Life, which have been more particularly exemplified in the Rise and Fall of the Person, the Subject of this Discourse ; who from almost a mean Obscurity, soar'd to the lofty Pyramid of Honour ; where for a while, like an unfixed Star, he appeared to the Eyes of the wondring Nation, giving an imperfect Lustre ; till by the sud- den Turn and Change of unsteady Fortune he dropt headlong from his Sphere, and lost at once his Grandeur and his Power. To let Mankind see how little Trust there is to be given to the Smiles of flattering Greatness, especially when attained by violent and pressing Motions : I now proceed to trace this un- fortunate Favourite in the sundry Capacities and Stations that have hitherto made up the Series of his Life. He was born at Acton, near W rex am, in Denbighshire, in U 2 292 W&z %ilt anli 2Deatjj of Wales, about the Year 1648, his Father's Name was Jeffreys, being reputed a Gentleman in that Country, though of no large Fortune or Estate ; however he lived very comfortably on what he had, improving his yearly Income by his Industry ; and gain'd by his plain and honest Endeavours a good Repute amongst the Gentry of those Parts ; insomuch that it was not long before he, upon the Recommendation of some Person of Interest and Ability, -gain'd a Wife of a good House ; and they lived very comfortably together in their Rural Habitation, being far from Ambition, or striving for Court-favour ; but con- tented with what God had blessed them with, and the Fruits of their own Industry, they found a solid Happiness in that Con- tentment. Nor had they lived together any considerable Time, but amongst other Children, the Fruits of Wedlock, God was pleased to bestow on them the Person who is intended the Sub- ject of this Discourse, who was in due Time baptized by the Christian Name of George; whether he had Godfathers, &c. it does not occur ; however, he under the Care and Diligence of his Industrious Parents grew up, and appear'd to all that studied him, of a very prompt and ready Wit, active, and striv- ing for Pre-eminence, even among his Compeers in his tender Age, which lively demonstrated that an Air of Ambition was inherent to his Person. As soon as he was capable to receive Learning, he was put to a Country-School, where he was furnished with such Education as that afforded, which was not extraordinary ; yet his natural Parts set it off to the best Advantage ; and growing to Years of somewhat a ripe Understanding, and not very tractable, his Father by the Advice of some of his Confidents, caused him to be brought to London, and finding him not inclinable to any Trade, but rather addicted to Study, he entred him, or by his Procurement he was entered into the Free-School of West- minster, where he profited much, so that he was, by the Care of the worthy Master thereof, soon enabled to understand the Languages, or at least so many of them as were convenient for the Study of the Law, which above other Things he aimed at ; tho' his Father seemed not very pliable to his Desires ; for per- ceiving in his Soul a more than ordinary Spark of Ambition, fearing it might kindle into a Flame, and prove one Day his <$zov$z Ilort) 3l^ffre?^ 293 Ruin, he laboured to hinder the Ways he conceived most likely to bring it upon him ; and is reported to say (when he found he could not dissuade him from what he purposed, gently clapping him on the Back), Ah, George, George, I fear thou wilt die with thy Shoes and Stockings on : What he meant by that Expression, I determine not, but leave the Reader to interpret. Upon the coming in of King Charles the Second, and the restoring the Face of Affairs in the Kingdom, the Law revived again, and began to flourish ; the Practitioners lived in much Credit and Reputation, and many of them purchased large Estates, which served to wing the Desire of this Person with Impatience ; and some say he was the rather incited to it by a Dream he had whilst a Scholar at Westminster-School, viz. That he should be the chief scholar in that School, and after- ward should enrich himself by Study and Industry, and that hi should co7iie to be the second Man in the Kingdom, but in Conclusion should fall into great Disgrace and Misery, This w r as confidently reported ; and some say himself told it to sun- dry Persons since, when he found the second Part of it was fulfilled, by acquiring the Chance I lours hip y and standing high in the Favour of his Prince. However, we find the latter Part did not deter him from his Purpose, for having entred himself in the Inner-Temple House, one of the chief Inns of Court, after his performing such Things as are conformable to the Customs of the House, we find him calFd to the Bar, by the Interest he made with the Benchers and Heads of that Learned Society, earlier than had been usual, leaping over the Heads of elder Graduates. This happening about the twentieth Year of the Reign of King Charles the Second, and the City of London beginning to raise herself out of her Ashes, more stately and magnificent than before she sunk in Flames, a Sacrifice to the Revenge and Malice of the Papists, as by the late Inscription on the Monu- ment, and upon Record it appears : This great City, I say, regaining her Trade, her Priviledges and Customs were kept up with great Exactness, so that in the Courts at Guild-Hall there was much Business ; which being considered by this Per- son as more beneficial than that at Westminster, by Reason of its Frequency, and being carried on briefer, and with less Diffi- 294 *3£&e %iU anli 2DeatI) of culty ; which induced him to give his Attendance also at Hick's- Hall, and other inferiour Courts and Places ; insomuch that he being of a bold Presence, and having naturally a fluent Tongue, an audible Voice, and good utterance, he had not pleaded often before he was very much taken Notice of, and gain'd so much Credit by the People, that they preferred him before any of the younger Barristers; by which means he found his Stars begin to smile upon him, so that he was in a manner courted to take Fees, and had Breviates thrust into his Hand frequently in the middle of a Course by Persons, when they perceived it went ill on their Sides, and was like to go against them. Thus flush'd with Success, he now thought of nothing more than how he might climb ; nor did he want an Opportunity ; for the next Station we find him in, is that of Common Serjeant to the great and honourable City of London; and so much Fortune favoured him at this Time, that Alderman Jeffreys, the great Smoaker, having often observed his Discourse and Actions, took such a liking to him, that being of the same Name, tho ? not in the least any Relation, be back'd him with his Purse and Interest, which was not inconsiderable ; and thereby not only enabled him to carry on his Grandeur, but to purchase as he found a Conveniency or Advantage, in order to his keeping it up in the World. These, I say, being the Degrees by which he was climbing the slippery Stair of Honour, to contract a firmer Alliance, he addressed himself to a brisk young Widow, Daughter to Sir Thojnas Bludworth, then one of the Aldermen of the City, and who in the Time of the dreadful Conflagration had the Chair, as being then Lord Mayor; and so far prevaiPd upon the Lady and her Father, that he gained both their Consents, and the Contract was made, the Nuptials solemnized, And soon after he had the Pleasure to behold the Fruits of her Labour. Sir John Howel, the Recorder of London, giving Place, the Recordership became vacant, which made this Person lay hold of that Oppor- tunity, to use his own and the Interest of his Friends, to acquire that Place of Trust and Honour : Nor did his Measures fail him, for by the powerful Influence he had by this Time gain'd over sundry Persons, who were best able to promote him to what he so earnestly laboured to arrive at, he was chosen and (&m$t Horti 9|effre?0. 295 confirmed Recorder of the honourable City ; taking upon him the Charge and Care of the Writings, Papers, &*c. that belong to so great a Charge and Trust, as that of a Recorder of the City of London. By this Means being become (as himself declared) the Mouth of the City, and, as we may term him, Capital Judge in the Guild-Hall, in Controversies at the Sessions held there, &>c. and the Power of breathing forth Sentences of Punishment being put into his Hands, he found his Ambition enlarged, aim- ing at nothing more than to become a Court-Favourite : Nor was it long before an Opportunity offered itself, to make him to be taken Notice of: For so it happened, that some Persons had imprinted a Psalter, and entituled it (the better to shadow the Injury they had done to the Company of Stationers, by invading their Property) The King's Psalter, which occasioning a Dispute, it was referred to a Hearing before the Council at Whitehall, the King being present, and the Company the better to make out their Title and Claim, carried with them this Person as their Counsel, who in opening of the Case, and mak- ing the Complaint of the apparent Injury done to the Company, in printing what was really their Property, he had this Expresson, viz. They have teemed with a spurious Brat, which being clan- destinely midwiv'd into the World, the better to cover the Im- posture, they lay it at your Majesty 's Door, &c. This tho' the King might have taken it (for sundry Reasons) as a Reflection upon his Royal Person, yet he was so far from resenting it that Way, that he only turned to one of the Lords that sat next him, and said, This is a bold Fellow III warrant him. And indeed the Stationers had the Matter declar'd by the Honourable Board in their Favour. About this Time the Popish Plot being discovered by Dr. Oates and others, the Nation was for a while in a Ferment, and Matters run extreamly high in Disputes and Controversies, and he sail'd with the Current, declaring with much Heat and Violence against the Priests, Jesuites, and others of the Con- spirators and Romish Faction ; as appeared not only by his vehement Expressions in pleading against 'em, but the Alacrity and little Concern that was visible in his Countenance, when at any Time, as Recorder of London, he past Sentence of Death 296 %$z Jiitz ana 3Deatt) of upon any of them, which he frequently did with more or less Reproach, and became in a Manner the Terror of that Party. But no sooner he perceived the Wind tacking at Court, and that there was some Misunderstanding between King Charles the Second and his Parliament, but he began to fall off, and grow cold in prosecuting the Ends of the Government, being frequently at Court, and labouring as much as in him lay to draw the Magistracy of the City after him ; as appears more especially by one Passage, viz. The King being recovered of an Indisposition, that had for some Time put the Kingdoms in a Fear and Doubt of his Life, the Lord Mayor and Aldermen went to congratulate him upon his going abroad; after which, and a favourable Reception, it was proposed by this Person, that they should in like manner wait upon his Royal Highness, then Duke of York, who was not long before returned from Flanders; but perceiving no Forwardness to be seconded, he only with his Father-in- Law stayed behind to gain that Access. These and other Proceedings created in the City a Jealousie, that he had espoused an Interest to their Prejudice, which wrought so strong in their Conceits, that it was concluded in the Council-chamber at Guild-Hall, that he should resign his Recordership ; and accordingly they sent to him to deliver back the Papers and Writings they had entrusted him with, which accordingly was done, and Sir George Treby constituted Recorder in his stead. This so netled him, that he now openly declared himself to be what before was only suspected, indulging his Thoughts in nothing more, than how he might revenge it upon the Dissenters, to whose Influence on the Court of Aldermen he attributed his Dismission from the Recordership, and used his Endeavours to blacken them us much as he could. Yet all his Honour was not sunk; for he had prevailed for the Removal of Sir Job Charleton from the Chief Justiceship of the County Palatine of Chester, and by the Importunity and Interest of his Party at Court, gained it for himself; and took the first Possession of that Charge in much Splendour, paying at that Time his Father a Visit with a numerous Train, which, as 'tis reported, put the Old Gentleman in such a Fret, for the drinking up his Cider, and devouring his Provisions, that he charged him with (Bzovqz HorD 3feffrepgf- 297 the undertaking to ruin him, by bringing a whole Country at his Heels, commanding him never to attempt the like Prodi- gality again with Hopes of Success. Many Petitions being put up upon the dissolving the Parlia- ment, in 1682, by most of the Counties, and Burroughs, and Corporations of England, for the speedy calling another, to redress the Grievances of the Nation ; and the King shewing some Dislike of that Manner of Proceeding, this Person further to endear himself to the Interest of the Court, declared in his Station as vehemently against them, by saying, He abhorred that Petitioning, &c. from which, and the discountenancing the Petitioners as much as in him lay, he gained the Name and Epithet of an Abhorrerj and upon the burning the Pope in Effigies at Temple-Bar, upon the Birth-day of Queen Elizabeth, amongst other Figures, the Arch-waggs had set one on Horseback with his Face to the Tail, and a Paper on his Back, viz. I am an Abhorrer. During these Transactions, the Parliament being called, met at Westminster, and amongst others, this Person was calPd before them, for attempting to intrench upon the Rights and Priviledges of the People, &*c. and obliged at the Bar of the Commons House (after having been heard what he could say in Defence of his Proceedings by his Council), to make his Ac- knowledgment upon his Knees, and receive the Reprimand of the Speaker, whereupon, with some sharp Rebukes, as the Censure of the House, he was discharged. To comfort him in this Affliction, that was not, by a Man of his haughty Spirit, a little stomached; this Parliament being dissolved, and a call of Serjeants had at the King*s-Bench-Bar, Westminster, he was the first in the Roll, and consequently the King's Serjeant ; and as it is usual to present the King with a Ring on that Occasion, the Motto he agreed to, was, A Deo Rex, a Rege Lex; viz., The King from God, and the Law fro7n the King. And now the Popish Party playing their Cards with more Security, Edward Fitz-Harris, who had been impeached by the Commons, and stood charged by them of High-Treason being nevertheless, upon the Dissolution, tried at the King > s- Bench-Bar, this Person was the principal Stickler against him, and by his Rhetorick and Florid Expressions, wrought so powerfully with the Jury, who were somewhat in Doubt what 298 %$t TiiU anti SDeatf) of they should do in this Case, that they found him Guilty, and the Impeachment in Parliament set aside, he was executed as a Traitor at Tyburn : And soon after this, the Dissenters losing of their Esteem in the Eyes of the Court-Party, and some Jus- tices of Peace of Middlesex being sharp upon them, this Person was chosen Chairman at the Sessions at Hick's- Hall, where he had an Opportunity to make them as he found his Time, see the Resentments of his Anger ; but this Place being held too low for a Spirit winged with so large an Ambition, he aimed at higher Things, resolving, like Icarus, to be near the Sun, tho ? at the Hazard of melting his waxen Wings, dropping headlong into the Sea of inevitable Ruin. Whereupon per- ceiving some hot Contests in the City of London, about the Election of Magistrates and Officers, he turned the Edge of his Fury that Way, insomuch, that a Quo Warranto came down against the Charter of the Honourable City of London, and in fine, after much Pleading and Arguments pro &> contra, the Charter was surrendred, at least in Consent, by those that were in Power, and the King suspending the Execution of the Judgment obtained, caused such Orders to be observed as he thought most convenient, which being so well known to the Citizens of London, it would appear a Presumption in me to enter upon Particulars ; yet the chiefest Cavil against the City was, taking the Toll of Markets, collecting Money to build Cheapside Conduit, S^c. Nor was it long after this, that several Persons were tried for Rioters, who attended the Election of Sheriffs and Mayor, and Fines were passed upon many worthy Citizens, as Rioters on that Occasion ; in promoting which, this Person as a Counsellor by his florid Rhetorick was mainly in- strumental, by giving the Court an Account of their respective Abilities, the better to settle the Fines; but the Lord Chief Justice Saunders dying, he succeeded him as Lord Chief Justice of the Kings' -Bench; in which Station he was scarcely settled, but he admitted the Popish Lords to Bail, that lay under an Impeachment in Parliament, and whose bailing had been refused by the Judges his Predecessors ; and now it was that he began more particularly to remember former Affronts, an Example of which take in the Case of Elias Best, a Hop- Merchant in Thames-street, viz. (Beorge Horti 3|tffrep& 299 It so happened when this Person was Recorder of London, that a Jury, of which Best was one, having contrary to his Mind, acquitted a Party indicted at the Sessions of Peace in Guild-hall, for Printing and Publishing a Pamphlet, he in much Heat -declared, that they had gone contrary to their Consciences, and §tuck not to upbraid them with Perjury ; for which, as an high Affront put upon the Juries of London, they prayed the Court at the Old B ally, that they might prefer an Indictment against him ; and herein Mr. Best was the most active : But the Lord Chief Justice Scroggs then upon the Bench, after it had been a long Time argued and debated, told them, that the Sessions being almost at an End, it could not be tried, and therefore he would desire them to refer it to the next Sessions, for the Recorder being a Person of Quality, he could not suffer him to lye under the Imputation of an Indictment so long ; but in the interim, he resigning his Recordership, the Business fell, and came to nothing ; but soon after it seems, Mr. Best had drank an Health to the pious Memory of Stephen Colledge departed, meaning the Joyner that was executed at Oxford, for which he was indicted upon an Information, and found Guilty ; yet he being at large, thought fit to withdraw himself to avoid the Rigour of the Fine, &*c. when so it fell out, that this Person going the Circuit as Lord Chief Justice, accompanied with a great many on Horseback, Mr. Best came by, and asked one of the Company what Judge that was ? Who replied, the Lord Chief Justice Jeffreys, and he unadvisedly told that Party his Name was Best, and desired him to remember his Service to his Lordship ; upon notice of which he immediately caused him to be fetched back, and committed him to York Goal, from whence he was brought by Habeas Corpus to the King's-Bench, and imprisoned for a Fine of ^500, &r*c. Another instance of the Greatness of his Stomach, tho' in another Nature, is that which so remarkably happened at Kingston upon Thames, at the Mid- summer-Assizes held there for the County of Surrey, 1679. At this Assize being Counsel in a Case upon Nisi prius, before Sir Richard Weston, one of the Barons of the Exchequer, and desiring to ingross all the Questions, without suffering those on the other Side to ask the Witness what was convenient in carrying on, and managing the Cause ; he was desired by the 300 %%% JLilt anD 2Deat1) of Judges to hold his Tongue, &>c. upon which some Words pass- ing, this Person told him, He did not use him like a Counsellor, curbing him in the managing his Breviates, &c. to which the Judge fiercely replied, Ha / Since the King has thrown his Favours upon you, in making you Chief Justice of Chester, you think to run down every Body ; if you find yourself aggrieved, make your Complaint, her 'e } s no Body cares for it. And this Person replying, That he had not been used to make Complaints, but rather stopped those that were made; when being again commanded to hold his Tongue, he sat down and wept for Anger, &c. And here by the way it will not be amiss to let the Reader have a Taste of some Passages that happened on the publick Stage of Business, in the Jocular part of this great Man's Life, and the Repartees he met with, of which I shall instance a few : Once it happened upon a Trial, that a plain Country fellow, giving Evidence in the Court, and pressing it home, moved this Person, who was Counsel on the other Side, to pick a Quarrel with this poor Man's Leather Doublet, and amongst other In- terrogations, bawl'd 'out, You fellow in the Leather Doublet, pray what have you for swearing f The Man upon this, looked steadily on him, replied, Truly, Sir, if you have no more for lying than I have for Swearing, you might wear a Leather Doublet as well as L This bluntly retorted, moved at that Time much Laughter, and filled the Town with the Discourse of it. Another Time it fell out, that some Musicians brought an Action against a Person, at whose Wedding-day they had play'd, for the Money they were promised or expected, when in the midst of the Evidence, this Person called to one of them, viz. You Fiddler, &c. at which the Man seeming disgusted, he again, upon the Party's alledging himself to be a Musician, demanded, What Difference there was between a Musician and a Fiddler? As much, Sir, said he, as there is between a pair of Bag-pipes and a Recorder. And he then being Recorder of London, it was taken as a suitable Repartee. A Country Gentleman having Married a City Orphan, comes and demands her Fortune, which was about .£1100, but by all the Friends that he could make, could not procure it, till he dfoorp lord ^zttxtyg. 301 goes to Jeffreys, then Recorder, and gave him ioo Guineas to be his Friend to get out his Wife's Fortune, upon which Jeffreys told him, that the Court of Aldermen would sit such a Day ; the Gentleman appearing, was call'd in, Jeffreys being present, who ask'd him, Sirrah, whafs your Business f Upon which the Gentleman told him, That he had Married a City- Orphan, and desired he might have her Portion o' th' Chamber ; upon which Jeffreys ask'd him, If he had askt the Consent of the Court of Aldermen ? He told him, No. Upon which he call'd him Rogue, Rascal, Sirrah, you should have ask'd Leave from the Court for such a Marriage. He told him he under- stood not the Custom o' th' City, and begged their Pardon, being a Country Gentleman. Upon this Jeffreys abus'd him again : but afterwards gives him a Note for his Money ; his publick Railing upon him being only to blind the Court, that they might not suspect him bribed. Jeffreys (when Chief Justice) being at a Country Assize, try- ing a Cause, an old Man with a great Beard came to give Evidence before him, and not doing it to his Mind, he began to cavil with his Beard, and amongst other Expressions told him, That if his Conscience was as large as his Beard, he might well swear any thing. This so netled the old Blade, that without any Respect to his Greatness, he briskly replied, My Lord, if you go about to measure Consciences by Beards, your Lordship has none. The Lord Jeffreys at another time making a Speech to the Grand Jury, particularly charged them to be severe against the Protestant Dissenters ; during the Time of the Charge he espied his old Schoolmaster, and pointed at him particularly, saying, That is one of them. Many more of this kind might be men- tioned, but not being greatly to the Purpose, they are willingly omitted. Which the Reader will be apt to believe, if he ex- amines his Dealings with Mr. Moses Pitt, Bookseller, which that I may set in their true Light, I shall give 'em in Mr. Pitt's own words, as I find 'em in his Treatise, entituled, The City of the Oppressed, p. 105, which are as follows : Among several Houses I built both in King-street and Duke- street, Westminster, just against the Bird-Cages in St. James s Park, which just as I was a finishing, I lett to the Lord 302 Wyz %itz anti 2DeatIj of Chancellor Jeffreys, with Stables and Coach-houses to it, for £300 per Annum. After which, when he the said Chancellor came to see the House, (Alderman Duncomb, the great Banker being with him) and looking about him, saw between the House and St. James's Park an idle piece of Ground, he told me, 'He would have a Cause- Room built on it. I told him that the Ground was the King's. He told me that he knew it was ; but he would beg the Ground of the King, and give it me : He also bid me make my own Demands, and give it him in Writ- ing, the which I did ; and unto which he did agree, and com- manded me immediately to pull down the Park- Wall, and to build as fast as I could, for he much wanted the said Cause- room. My Agreement with him was, That he should beg of King James all the Ground without the Park- Wall, between Webbs and Storey's inclusive; which said Ground is Twenty-Five Foot in Breadth, and near Seven Hundred Foot in length (to the best of my Memory) for Ninety Nine Years, at a Pepper- corn per Annum, and he, the said Lord Chancellor, was to make over the said King's Grant to me for the said Number of Years, without any Alterations, with Liberty to pull down, or build on the Kings Wall, and to make a Way and Lights into the King's Park, according as I pleas' d. In Consideration of my building on the said Ground of the Kings's, and the said Lord Chancellor's Enjoyment of it during his Occupation of the said House. All which the Lord Chancellor agreed to. For that purpose he sent for Sir Christopher Wren, his Majesty's Sur- veyor, and my self, and ordered Sir Christopher to take Care to have the said Ground measured, and a Platform taken of it, and that Writings and Deeds be prepared for to pass the Great Seal. Sir Christopher ask'd the said Lord Chancellor, in whose Name the Grant was to pass, whether in his Lordship's or Mr. Pitt's f The Chancellor replied, That the King had granted him the Ground for Ninety Nine Years, at a Pepper-corn per Annum, and that he was to make over the said Grant to his Landlord Pitt, for the same Term of Years, without any Alteration, in Consideration of his said Landlord Pitt building him a Cause- Room, S^c. and his the said Lord Chancellor's enjoying the same during his living in the said Pitt's House : and withal urg'd him the said Pitt immediately to take down the King's (Beorp Horti 3|effrtpgu 303 Park-wall, and to build with all Expedition ; for he much wanted the Cause-room, and that I should not doubt him, for he would certainly be as good as his Agreement with me. My Witnesses are, Sir Christopher Wren, his Majesty's Surveyor, Mr. Fisher deceased, who belong'd to Sir C. H arbor d, his Majesty's Land Surveyor, Mr. Joseph Avis, my Builder, Mr. Thomas Blud- worth, Mr. John Arnold, both Gentlemen belonging to the said Lord Chancellor, and several others; upon which I had a Warrant from Mr. Cook, out of the Secretary of State's Office, in the Lord Chancellor's Name, with King Jameses Hand and Seal, to pluck down the King's Wall, and make a Door and Steps, Lights, &*c. into the Park, at Discretion ; which said Warrant cost me £6 5s. Upon which, in about three or four Months Time I built the two Wings of that great House, which is opposite to, the Bird-cages, with the Stairs, and Tarrass, &r*c. which said Building cost me about Four Thousand Pounds, with all the Inside-work : My Workmen being employed by the said Lord Chancellor to fit up the said House, and also Offices, and Cause-Room for his Use ; for all which he never paid me one Farthing. When I had finished the said Building, I demanded of him several Times my Grant of the said Ground from the King ; he often promised me, that I should certainly have it ; but I being very uneasie for want of my said Grant, I wrote several Times to him, and often waited to speak with him, to have it done ; but at last I found I could have no Access to him, and that I spent much Time in waiting to speak with him, altho' I lived just over-against his Door ; and also I considered that he could not be long Lord Chancellour of England, King William being just come. I got into the Parlour where he was, many Tradesmen being with him that he had sent for ; I told him, that I did not so earnestly demand my Rent, which was near half a Year due, but I demanded of him my Grant from King James of the Ground we had agreed for, in Consideration of my Building. He told me, That he would leave my House, and that he should not carry away the Ground and Building with him ; which was all the Answer I could have from him. And the very next Day he went into Whitehall, and had the Jesuite Peter's Lodging, where he lay till that Tuesday Morning 304 W&t ILxlz ant) 2Deatf) of King James first Abdicated, and went away with Sir Edward Hales ; the said Lord Chancellour should have gone with them, but they dropt him ; so that Morning finding them to be gone, he was fain to shift for himself, and to fly with a Servant, or at most two, with him, and soon after taken and sent to the Tower, where he since died. Jeffreys prosecuted Mr. Baxter for his Paraphrase upon the New Testament, and sent him to prison ; he coming out by an Habeas 'Corpus, was fain to abscond in the country (in con- stant Pain) till the Term. Then his oft Waitings at the Bar (where he could not stand) and then to be railingly treated by Jeffreys and Withins, and called Rogue and Knave, and not suffered to speak one Word of Answer for himself, and his Councel being reviled that offered to speak for him, was far harder to him than his Imprisonment. And then going from the Bar, he only said, That his Predecessor thought otherwise of him. Jeffreys reply'd, There was not an honest Man in England that took him not for a Knave; not excepting the King, that had given him another Testimony in Words. But to return to the Thred of this Discourse; passing by his vehement and pressing Discourse to the Jury against William Lord Russel, on his Trial at the Old Baily, which, some say, greatly influenced them to find him guilty; and add, That he did it out of a Pique, in Remembrance he was one of the Mem- bers of the Parliament before whom he was brought on his knees. We find him by this Time trying of Dr. Titus Oates, upon two Informations, upon the Account of his swearing to the White- //^r^-Consult, and Ireland's being in Town ; and after a long Debate, wherein many Repartees passed, the Jury made a shift to find him guilty ; as to the Circumstances, I refer you to the Trial ; but the Sentence was severe, and of its Effects few are ignorant, wherefore I shall pass it over, as also Mr. Tho?nas Dangerfield, another of the Evidences in discovering the Con- trivances, and carrying on of the Popish Plot, which the Papists by these manner of Proceedings accounted to be effectually stifled. And now before any thing remarkable happened, the Kingdom was alarm'd with the Landing of the late Duke of Monmouth at Lyme, in Dorsetshire, and the Earl of Argyle in Scotland; but however these two unfortunate Gentlemen mis- Horn dPeorjje 3|effrepgu 305 carrying, and losing their lives, left a great many of their miserable Followers to feel the Severity of Punishment ; and as for the gleaning the bloody Fields in England, they came to the sitting of this Person, who with others going down with a Commission to try them, all the Indignities the Dissenters had put upon him, came fresh into his Remembrance, so that he made them find the Laws more cruel than the Sword, and wish they had fallen in the field, rather than come to his Handling ; for he breathed Death like a destroying Angel, and sanguined his very Ermins in Blood : A large Account of which you shall have in its proper Place. But by the Way, for the sake of the West-Country Reader, I shall here add a true and impartial Narrative of the late Duke of Monmouth's whole Expedition while in the West, seeing that was the Prologue to that bloody Scene that you will hear by and by, was acted by George Lord Jeffreys, (the Subject of our present Discourse.) To begin then, May 24, Old Style, we left Amsterdam about Two of the Clock, being Simday Morning, and in a Lighter sail'd for the Texel, our Vessels being sent before us thither ; but meeting with extreme cross Winds all the Way, we arrived not till Saturday Night, and then went all on Board. Here our Man of War with about 32 Guns (where the Duke's Person was) was under an Arrest by Order of the States of Amsterdain on the Complaint of our Envoy, they presuming we had been clear, but we broke through our Arrest, and Sunday Morning, at break of Day, set Sail for England. We had in all three Ships; that of 32 Guns carried most of our Men, the other two were for our Ammunition. We met with exceeding cross Winds, most part of the Time we spent on the Seas, and arrived not at Lyme till Thursday, June 11, so that from Amsterdam to Lyme we wanted but two Days of three weeks. We landed without any the least Opposition, and were re- ceived with all Expressions of Joy imaginable ; the Duke, as soon as he jumped out of his Boat on Land, call'd for Silence, and then desir'd we would join with him in returning God Thanks for that wonderful Preservation we had met with at Sea, and accordingly fell on his Knees on the Sand, and was x 306 %l)t %ift an* 2Deatf) of the Mouth of us all in a short Ejaculation, and then immediately well Armed, as many as we were, entered the Town. Friday the whole Day was spent in listing of Men, which flocked to us so fast, that we could scarce tend them with Arms. The like on Saturday also; and then about ten of the Clock at Night, 300 of our Men were sent to Bridport, about six English Miles off, to storm that Town betimes in the Morning, which we did accordingly, taking many Prisoners out of their Lodgings ; and had not our Soldiers been a little too eager of Plunder, we had made a good Day's Work on't ; but there lying about a Wood some of the King's Forces, we were forced to retreat, losing three or four Men, and killing several of theirs, and taking eight Prisoners ; this was the first Action which he had. Sunday also was spent in Listing, and Monday Morning ; but in the Afternoon we marched out of Lyme for Axminster, a little Town four Miles off ; our Party was near 2000 Foot, and 300 Horse, though we landed not full an hundred Men, and all these in the Space of four Days : About two Miles from Lyme we espied the Duke of Albermarle, with about 4000 Men, designing that Night to quarter in the same Town, which we had News of in the Way ; yet we marched on in good Order, and came into the Town, lined all the Hedges, planted our Field-pieces, and expected nothing more than that we should give 'em Battel, they being not an English Mile from the Town ; they made towards us as soon as they heard that we were there; but the Duke of Albermarle finding his Men to be all Militia-Men of the County of Devonshire, and that they had no Stomach to fight against Monmouth, retreated, when he came within a Quarter of an English Mile of the Town. He came from Exon with these Forces, intending to lay a Siege against Lyme, presuming we could not be ready in so short a Time; but finding us so well prepared to receive him, he wisely retired, his Men being in great Disorder and Confusion, sup- posing we had pursued them, which was Debated; but the Duke said, It was not his Business to fight yet, till his Men had been a little disciplined, but rather to make up into the Country as fast as possible, to meet his friends, not questioning but there would have been in several Parts of the Kingdom some Action %orti SDeattj of of Argyll s being defeated, and likewise of the Advance of the King's Forces from London with considerable Bagage, and thirty Field-Pieces. On this News, together with our Want of Money and Arms, (not seeing which Way to avoid these Forces) we were at a Stand, and not a little non-plus d. 'Twas at 'last agreed on, that we that came with the Duke, should get good Horses that Night, and so for Pool, a little Sea-port Town not far off, where we were to seize a Ship, and set forth for Hoi- land again, leaving our Infantry to the Mercy of the Country. This was much like that Resolution of the Hollanders, in the Time of the Civil War with Spain, being, as we then were, in Despair of making better Terms, and not daring to enter Salts- bury-Plain, because their Horse being so much better than ours, their Men being all Disciplin'd, ours not, we could not face them in so plain and open a Country, so that we retreated backward : In the mean time resolving to see what London would do, having a good Opportunity offer' d them : The Soldiers being call'd forth, and not two thousand Men to be had for their Defence, if they had but attempted anything; this disheartened our Men, and several of them coming home to their own Country, having felt by Experience the Hardships of War, withdrew from us. We came well back again to Bridgwater, and were received with wonted Love ; we arrived here on Friday the 3rd of July, and resolved here to fortifie, so as to hold our Ground till w r e heard from London . Saturday in the Afternoon News was brought of the Approach of the King's Forces within a Mile and a half of the Town where they had encamped ; the Duke went up into the Tower, and there took a View of them, and seeing them so careless, and their Horse at some Distance from the Army, in a little Town, the Infantry being in Sedge- Moore. He called a Council on it, and it was concluded on, that we should fall on them in the dead of the Night ; accordingly having a Guide to conduct us on in a private Way, we march'd out at about Eleven of the Clock in the Night, and about One fell on them in their Tents. There was a Ditch between us, and the Guide promised to conduct 'em over an easie fordable Place, but our Men seeing the Enemy just before them, ran furiously on, and lost the Guide, so that while they endeavoured Horn <$z$x$z 3}effrepgf- 3" to recover over that Place, the Enemy got on their Legs, and put themselves in Order, and now began as fierce a Battel as perhaps ever was fought in England in so short a Time ; our Foot fought as well as ever Foot fought, but not a Horse came up ; had our Horse but assisted, we must have beaten them out of the Field. But our Horses would not stand at the Noise of Drums and Guns, so that we soon lost two of our Pieces of Ordnance, and we had but four in all, and then but one more in the Field ; our Foot flung most of their Shot over, so that the Men for the most Part were killed in the Rear, and that run, but the Front stood still ; and had we done as much Execution in the Front, as we did in the Rear, the Day had been our own ; but God would not have it, their Time was not yet come : By this Time their Horses came up, and having six or eight hundred good disciplin'd Men, well mounted and well arm'd, ours neither ; our Foot having shot away all their Ammunition, and our Bagage being not then in the Field, they were forced to retreat, being all in Confusion. Having no Money left, and our Party thus unexpectedly re- pulsed, the Duke seeing he could not hold it any longer, fled with my Lord Gray. The Duke's Party was said to be about three thousand Foot, and a thousand House ; we had more, at least five thousand Men and Horse, but not well arm'd, yet in the Field. 'Tis said we lost not above three hundred, and they Foot : But after when we were routed, in our Retreat, lost a vast many more ; though they pursued not in some Hours after. The most remarkable Persons that were taken in this total Rout, were Colonel Holmes ', Major Perrot, the Constable of Crookhorn, and Mr. Williams ', Servant to the late Duke of Monmouth. After the Field was clear of the Duke's Men, the Earl of Fever sham marched with five hundred Foot, and a Party of Horse and Dragoons to Bridgwater, where he found the Duke's Forces that were left there, fled and dispersed into several Places : When his Lordship having left these Men in the Town, under the Command of Colonel Kirk, and hearing the late Duke of Monmouth was fled with about fifty Horse, the greatest Number of the Duke's Men that were left together, he sent out divers 3i2 %$t JLift anti 2DeatIj of Parties in pursuit of him and others that fled the Field. When on the 7th of July, about Five in the Morning, some of the Lord Lumlfs Men seiz'd the Lord Gray and another Person near Holt- Lodge in Dorsetshire, four Miles from the West of Ring- wood; and the said Lord Lumly making further Enquiry among the Cotts, was informed by one Anna Ferrant, that two Men went over a Hedge, proving to be the Out-bounds of many In- closures^ some of which were overgrown with Fern, others with Pease and Oats ; but Guards being set upon the Avenues, after divers Attempts to escape, the Brandenburg, one of the Parties observed to enter the Ground, was taken on the 8th of July, about five in the Morning, who confessing he departed from the late Duke of Monmouth about One of the Clock that Morning in the Outbounds, diligent Search was made ; when about Eleven of the Clock the same Morning he was found, by one Henry Parking, hid in a Ditch, covered with Fern, who calling others to assist Him, the said late Duke was in the End taken, and together with the Lord Grey and the Brandenburgh, with a Guard brought by easie Journies to Whitehall, where they ar- rived on the 13th of July, and after some Examination were committed to the Tower, when on Wednesday the 1 5th of July y the late Duke of Monmouth, pursuant to a Warrant signed for his Execution, upon his Attainder of High-Treason, was deli- vered to the Sheriffs of London and Middlesex, ahout Ten in the Morning, and conducted to a Scaffold erected on Tower-Hill> where after about half an Hour's Continuance, he laying down his Head, had it stricken off by the Executioner, the which, together with his Body, being put into a Coffin covered with Velvet, were carried away in a Velvet-covered Hearse, in Order to his Interment. After the Duke was beheaded, many Prisoners taken, and those that fled by Parcels up and down, secured in divers Goals, in Order to their Prosecution, as was said, according to Law ; which was the Occasion of this great Man's shewing his Parts to that Degree as he did, no one else being fit to be made a Tool for such a Bloody Tragedy as he acted. He went not only Judge, but had a Breviate under King James's Hand, to command what Troops he pleas'd to attend his Commands from Place to Place. And was Lieutenant- Horn d5eorffe 3ieffrep& 313 General, as well as Judge, and he gave daily the Word, and Orders for going the Rounds, &>c. and ordered what Party of Troops he pleased to attend him. When Major C d, who commanded the first Regiment of Guards, the Dragoons, who were as his Life-Guard, when at the Head of the Troop follow- ing Jeffreys from Somersetshire to Wiltshire, in Order for Lon- don, after the Assizes, the Major asked Jeffreys, If there would be any favour shewn to one Mr. Speake, who was not the Speake intended ? Jeffreys said, No, his Family owed a L ife, he should die for his Name-sake, because one of the Family and Name was guilty of being in the Action, but was escaped, and therefore this being his Brother, should die. Jeffreys demanded of the Major, How many he thought there was killed by the Soldiers ? He replied, a Thousand, Quoth Jeffreys, I believe I have con- demned as many as that myself. — 'Tis to be remembred, that the Fellow call'd Tory Tom, at Wells, for his dirty Sauciness was sent to the Guard by his Major ; when presently this Tory Tom petitioned some Persons to intercede with the Major and sent the Major a Letter, desiring his Liberty ; for that if he or any one should give Tory Tom an ill word to Judge Jeffreys, the Judge would hang him right or wrong with the rest of the Pri- soners, or condemn him at least ; so, upon his Submission, the Major discharged him, and did not leave him to the Mercy of his own Tory Judge. The Trials in the West were deferred (for some time after the fatal Blow given to the Duke of Monmouth on Tower-Hill, which was the 15th of July following) because of my Lord's being at Tunbridgej but the latter end of August, he with a special Commission of Oyer and Terminer, assisted with four other Judges, set forward with a Party of Horse, he being made by special Commission their General. The first Place he came at, was Winchester, where were divers Prisoners on Suspicion ; but here began the Tragedy ; for the Lady Lisle was there Ar- raigned for High-Treason, in harbouring Mr. Hicks and Mr. Nelthrope, that had been concerned with the Duke ; the Lady being on her Trial, the Jury were dissatisfied once and again, but my Lord's Threats and other Managery, so disposed the Jury, that at last they brought the Lady in Guilty ; on which he pronounced the Sentence of Death on her, as usual in such 314 %%z ILifz ana 2Deatf) of Cases ; but she had the Favour of being beheaded ; their other Prisoners were carried to Salisbury ; and this was the most remarkable Thing at that Assizes. From thence they set forward for Salisbury, where were many Prisoners that had been pick'd up and down the Country, then in the Goal, the which, with those that were brought from Winton, were ordered to be carried to Dorchester, there not being Evidence enough to accomplish what was then designed by my Lord ; so that little of Moment passed there, but to pur- sue the Matter, proceeds from thence to Dorchester, where he with his Assistants, Gown-men and Sword-men, arrived on the 3d of September, on which day, being Thursday, the Commission was read. Friday Morning was an Excellent Sermon preached before their Lordships, by a worthy Divine, Chaplain to a worthy Person of that Country, much tending to Mercy : It was ob- served, that while my Lord Chief Justice was in Church at Prayers, as well as at Sermon, he was seen to laugh ; which was so unbecoming a Person in his Character, that ought in so weighty an Affair as he was then entering upon, to have been more serious, and have craved the Assistance of God Almighty. The Sermon being over, their Lordships repaired to the Court, which by Order of the Lord Chief Justice was hung with Red Cloth, a Colour suitable to such a succeeding Bloody Tragedy, being accompanied by a numerous Company of the Gentry of that County, as well as the Flower of the Neighbouring Counties of Somerset and Devonshire, and then proceeded to give his Charge ; in which Charge, by Reason of the Severity of his Sentiments, and Positions laid down to make Discoveries of all such as were Abettors, Aidors, or Assisters to the late Duke of Monmouth, on Pain of High-Treason, which was a great Sur- prise to all the Auditors, and so vehemently urged, and so passionately expressed, as seemed rather the Language of a Romish Inquisitor, than a Protestant Judge; and then Ad- journed until Eight of the Clock next Morning, when was a Bill found against thirty Persons charg'd for High-Treason, for aiding and assisting the late Duke of Mon?nouth; who put themselves on their Trials, notwithstanding my Lord's Threat - ning, That if any did put the7iiselves on T7'ial, and the Country found them Guilty, they should have but a little Time to live. 3Loro dfoorp 3|effreps- 315 And at the same time insinuated, That it were better to plead Guilty ', 2/" //z^y expected any Favour. These thirty being on Trial, the Evidences being sworn and examined before the Jury : Upon the whole, by the violent Deportment of the Lord Chief Justice, and Sharpness of the Jury, they found twenty nine Guilty, though some of them were very hardly dealt with, and not so Criminal as my Lord and the Country imagined. Particularly amongst the twenty nine, were Mr. Matthew Bragg of Thorncomb, and Joseph Speed of Culliton, in the County of Devonshire, and Mr. Smith, Con- stable of Chardstock, in the said County, and George Steward of Culliton aforesaid. The Circumstances of each of these, and the Severity of their being found Guilty, &*c. shall be shewed in his proper Place, before we take Leave of this Town, and proceed on in this Western Expedition. The said twenty nine being found (as before) Guilty, my Lord immediately pronounced Sentence of Death on them all, as usual in Cases of High-Treason, and did the same Night give a Warrant to the Sheriff for the Execution of thirteen of the twenty nine on Monday following ; which accordingly was done, notwithstanding great Application was made to the Lord Chief Justice by Gentlemen of the best Quality, in this and the neigh- bouring Counties, for a Reprieve of Mr. Bragg, to all which he was deaf, and not to be prevailed upon, though he was assured of his Honesty, and true Conformity to the Church of England, yet it availed nothing. At last it was only requested for ten Days Respite, yet that had no better effect ; but on Monday he with twelve more of that Number were accordingly executed at Dorchester. In the mean time this Proceeding was design' d to shorten Business, and to wheedle the rest that were to follow to a Con- fession, which without it the tenth Part of them could not be proved Guilty. A Method was also taken without President, to entrap many poor ignorant People, by a couple of Officers that were sent into the Gaol, to call over, and to take the Names of the Prisoners, on Promise, if they confest, they might expect Mercy, otherwise not ; which many did. And this was written so, that had they pleaded Not Guilty, these two were designed to have been Evidences against them from their own Confes- 316 the whole being recited before : We shall therefore endeavour to be as brief as we can, to give you what we think material, and truly Matter of Fact ; my Lord now being come to con- clude this extraordinary Commission, and in haste to be elevated, maketh all manner of Dispatch to repair to the King then at Windsor, to give an Account of his Transactions, and to receive the Reward of his meritorious Service in this Butchering of Protestants, which is so acceptable to his Holiness and his bigotted Disciples, as nothing can be more ; and indeed, if you will belive them, a Work that merits Heaven at last, besides what Temporal Preferments are thought fit in this World. If this cruel Judge were a true Protestant, his Case is much the ILovt} (&tov$t 3[effrt^0. 319 worse, being made Use of as a Tool to destroy, and carry on Popish designs. Thus the Affairs being ended, the Country filled with Heads and Quarters of those that were executed, the rest that had not wherewith to purchase their Lives, left in Custody in Order to Transportation. J shall next add the Charge given by the Lord Chief Justice Jeffreys, at the City of Bristol, Monday, September 21, 1685. In his Return from his Western Campaign. Gentlemen, I am, by the Mercy of God, come to this Great and Popu- lous City, a City that boasts both of its Riches and Trade, and may justly indeed claim the next Place to the Great and Populous Metropolis of this Kingdom. Gentlemen, I find here are a great many Auditors, who are very intent, as if they expected some formal or prepared Speech, but assure your selves, we come not neither to make set Speeches, nor formal Declama- tions, nor to follow a couple of puffing Trumpeters j for, Lord, we have seen those Things Twenty times before : No, we come to do the King's Business ; a King who is so Gracious as to use all the Means possible to discover the Disorders of the Nation, and to search out those who indeed are the very Pest of the Kingdom : To this End, and for this Purpose, we are come to this City. But I find a special Commission is an unusual Thing here, arid relishes very ill ; nay, the very Women storm at it, for fear we should take the Upper-hand of them too ; for by the by, Gentlemen, I hear it is much in Fashion in this City for the Women to Govern and bear Sway. But, Gentlemen, I will not stay you with such needless Stories, I will only mention some few Things that fall within my Knowledge ; for Points or Matters of Law, I shall not trouble you, but only mind you of some Things that lately hath happened, and particularly in this City, (for I have the Kalender of this City in my Pocket) and if I do not express my self in so formal or set a Declamation, (for as I told you, I came not to make Declamations) or in so smooth 320 %ty 1L\U anD 2Deatf) of Language as you may expect, you must attribute it partly to the Pain of the Stone, under which I labour, and partly to the Unevenness of this Days Journey. Gentlemen, I may say that even some of the youngest amongst us may remember the late horrid Rebellion, how Men, under Colour of Law, and Pretext of Justice, after they had divested a most Gracious and most Merciful Prince of all his Royal Power, by the Power of the Sword ; they, I say, under Colour of Law, and Pretext of Justice, (which added the more to the Crime, that it was done under such pretended Justice) brought the most Mild and Meekest Prince (next to our Ever-Blessed Saviour Jesus Christ, if we may but compare him to a Man) to die a Martyr, the first Blessed Martyr, (pardon the Expression ; besides our most Blessed Jesu, who suffered for us on the Cross; I say, besides that Blessed Son of God) this, I say, was the first Royal Martyr ; not suffering him to speak for himself, or make his Defence ; a Liberty which is given to the vilest Traitor ; and this was done (not to descant on the Number) by Forty One. The Rebels not resting here, for Rebellion is like the Sin of Witchcraft, divested the Lineal, Legal, and Rightful Heir of the Crown of all his Power and Prerogative, till the mighty God of Heaven and Earth, God Almighty, restored him to his Just Right : And he, as if begot in Mercy, not only forgave all Offences, and pardoned voluntarily, even all that had been in actual Arms against him (except those accursed Regicides), but made it a Crime for any one that should but remember or upbraid any of their past Crimes and Rebellions. Good God ! O Jesu ! That we should live in such an Age, in which such a Prince cannot be safe from the seditious Contrivances of pardoned Rebels ! Had we not the Rye Conspiracy, wherein they not only designed to have murthered that most Blessed (for so now we may conclude him to be with God Almighty) and Gracious King, but also his ever Dear and Victorious Brother ? Had we not the Bill of Exclusion, which our most Gracious King told us he could not, without a manifest Infringe- ment of the Royal Prerogatives of the Crown, (which are too sacred for us to touch) consent to ? Had we not the cursed Counsel of Achitophelf Kings are God's Vice- Regents on Earth, and are indeed Gods on Earth, and we represent them. Now when God ilorti (Beorge %\zttvzv#. 321 Almighty had of his Infinite Goodness, called this Blessed Prince unto himself, he sends a Prince, who assures us he will imitate his Royal Brother and Renouned Predecessor in all Things, espe- cially in that of his Clemency and Mercy, and that too upon the Word of a King ; a King, I will assure you, that will not be worse than his Word ; nay, (pardon the Expression) that dare not be worse than his Word. Which of you all that had a Father murthered by another, (and that deliberately too, under Colour of Justice, which added to the Crime ; and your Brother, nay, your selves thrust out from your Inheritance, and banished from your Country; nay, that sought your Blood like-wise) would not, if it was in your Power, revenge such Injuries, and ruin such Persecutors ? But here our most Blessed Prince, whom God long preserve, hath not only forgiven, but will venture his Life for the Defence of such his Enemies. Has he not ventur'd his Life already as far as any Man, for the Honour of these Kingdoms? Nay, I challenge this City to shew me any one Man of it, that perchance may not be worth a Groat, that has ventured his Life so far for the Safety of these Kingdoms, as this Royal Prince hath done. Good God ! What an Age do we live in ! Shall not such a Prince be secure from the Sedition, Rebellion, and Plots of Men ? He is scarce seated on his Royal Throne, (where God Almighty grant he may long Reign) but on the one Hand he is invaded by a condemned Rebel, and Arch- Traitor, who hath received the just Reward of his Rebellion ; on the other Hand up starts a Poppet Prince, who seduces the Mobile into Rebellion, into which they easily are bewitched ; for I say, Rebellion is like the Sin of Witchcraft ; this Man, who had as little Title to the Crown as the least of you (for I hope all you are Legitimate) being overtaken by Justice, and by the Goodness of his Prince brought to the Scaffold, he has the Con- fidence (Good God ! That Men should be so impudent) to say, That God Almighty did know with what Joyfulness he did die; (a Traitor) having for these two Years last past lived in all Incontinency and Rebellion, notwithstanding the Goodness of an Indulgent Prince so often to pardon him ; but it is just like him. Rebellion (as I told you) is like the Sin of Witchcraft. For there was another, which I shall not name, because I will not trample on the Dust of the Dead, but you may remember him by these Words of his Speech ; he tells you, That he thanks Y 322 W$z JLifz anU 2Dtatf) of his God that he falls by the Ax, and not by the Fiery Trial. He had rather (he had as good have said) die a Traitor than a Blessed Martyr. Great God of Heaven and Earth ! What Reason have Men to rebel ! but as I told you, Rebellion is like the Sin of Witch- craft ; Fear God, and Honour the King, is rejected by People for no other Reason, as I can find,but that it is written in St. Peter. Gentlemen, I must tell you, I am afraid, I am afraid that this City hath too many of these People in it. And it is your Duty to search them out : For this City added much to that Ship's Loading ; there was your Tytys, your Roe's, and your Wades, Men started up like Mushrooms, Scoundrel Fellows, meer Sons of Dunghils : These Men must forsooth set up for Liberty and Property. A Fellow that carries the Sword before Mr. Mayor, must be very careful of his Property, and turn Politician, as if he had as much Property as the Person before whom he bears the Sword ; though perchance not worth a Groat. Gentlemen, I must tell you, you have still here the Tyly's, the Roe's, and the Wades : I have brought a Brush in my Pocket, and I shall be sure to rub the Dirt wherever it lies, or on whom soever it sticks. Gentlemen, I shall not stand complimenting with you, I shall talk with some of you before you and I part : I tell you, I tell you, I have brought a Besome, and I will sweep every Man's Door, whether great or small. Must I mention Particu- lars ? I hope you will save me that Trouble ; yet I will hint a few Things to you, that perchance I have heard of. This is a great City, and the Magistrates wonderful Loyal, and very for- ward to assist the King with Men, Money, and Provisions, when the Rebels were just at your Gates : I do believe it would have went very hard with some of you if the Enemy had en- tered the City, notwithstanding the Endeavours that was used to accomplish it. Certainly they had and must have great In- couragement from a Party within, or else why should their Design be on this City ? Nay, when the Enemy was within a Mile of you, that a Ship should be set on fire in the midst of you, as a Signal to the Rebels, and to amuse those within ; when if God Almighty had not been more Gracious unto you than you was to your selves (so that Wind and Tide was for you) for what I know, the greatest Part of this City had per- ished ; and yet you are willing to believe it was an Accident. HorO (Btorffe Jeffrey. 323 Certainly here is a great many of those Men which they call Trimmers. A Whig is but a mere Fool to these ; for a Whig is some sort of a Subject in Comparison of these ; for a Trim- mer is but a cowardly and base-spirited Whig; for the Whig is but the Journeyman-Prentice, that is hired and set on in the Rebellion, whilst the Trimmer is afraid to appear in the Cause; he stands at a Doubt, and says to himself, I will not assist the King until I see who hath the best of it ; and refuses to enter- tain the King's Friends for fear the Rebels should get the better of it. These Men stink worse than the worst Dirt you have in your City ; these Men have so little Religion, that they forget that he that is not for us is against us. Gentlemen, I tell you, I have the Kalender of this City here in my Hand ; I have heard of those that have searched into the very Sink of a Con- venticle to find out some sneaking Rascal to hide their Money by Night. Come, come, Gentlemen, to be plain with you, I find the Dirt of the Ditch is in your Nostrils. Good God ! Where am I ? In Bristol ? This City, it seems, claims the Priviledge of Hanging and Drawing amongst themselves : I find you have more need of a Commission once a Month at least. The very Magistrates, which should be the Ministers of Justice, fall out one with another to that Degree, they will scarce dine with each other, whilst it is the Business of some cunning Men that lye behind the Curtain to raise Divisions amongst them, and set them together by the Ears, and knock their Logger-heads to- gether ; yet I find they can agree for their Interest, or if there be but a Kid in the Case ; for I hear the Trade of Kid-napping is of much Request in this City, they can discharge a Felon, or a Traitor, provided they will go to Mr. Alderman's Plantation at the West-Indies. Come, come, I find you stink for want of Rubbing. Gentlemen, what need I mind you of these Things ? I hope you will search into them, and inform me. It seems the Dissenters and Phanaticks fare well amongst you, by Reason of the Favour of the Magistrates ; for Example, if a Dissenter, who is a notorious and obstinate Offender, comes before them to be fined, one Alderman or other stands up, and says, He is a good man, (tho' three Parts a Rebel) well then for the Sake of Mr. Alderman he shall be fined but 5^. Then comes another, and up stands another Goodman Alderman, and says, I know him to be an honest Man (though rather worse than the former) Y 2 324 C&e liiiz ana 2Deat!j of well, for Mr. Alderman's sake he shall be fined but half a Crown; so Manus manum fricat ; You play the Knave for me now, and I will play the Knave for you by and by. I am ashamed of these Things : And I must not forget to tell you, that I h,ear of some Differences amongst the Clergy, those that ought to preach Peace and Unity to others : Gentlemen, these Things must be looked into. I shall not now trouble you any further ; there are several other Things, but I expect to hear of them from you. And if you do not tell me of some of these things, I shall remind you of them. And I find by the Number of your Con- stables, this is a very large City, and it is impossible for one or two to search into all the Concerns of it ; therefore mind the Constables of their Duties, and call on them for their Present- ments ; for I expect every Constable to bring in his Present- ment, or that you present him. So Adjourn, &c. Upon Affidavits read, and other Evidence against Sir W ■ the Mayor, Alderman L , and others, for Kidnapping, there being Bills preferred to the Grand Jury by J R , and being found, he made the Mayor and the Aldermen concerned to go from the Bench to the Bar, to plead to the Informations ; using many Expressions, saying of the Mayor, See how the Kidnapping Rogue looks ; &c. My Lord, after he had left Bristol, being come to the King to give an Account of his Affairs in the West, the Great Seal being to be disposed of, by the Death of the late Keeper, he kiss'd the King's Hand for it, and was made Lord Chancellour, which was only an Earnest of his Desert for so eminent and extraor- dinary a Piece of Service ; for now that which remains, is to give an Account of divers that had fled, and hid themselves up and down in Holes and Privacies, whose Friends made all Application to some great Men or other to procure their Par- dons ; some to this, and others to such as they thought Favourites of the King ; but the Rewards must be ascertained before any Application could be made : Divers Lists being sent up, and the Rewards ascertained, which amongst many of them put together, did amount to considerable ; so that it was now who could find a Friend to relieve his distressed Relations, which were forced to wander up and down in Caves and De- sarts for fear of being taken : But this Misfortune attended the Agents, that unless my Lord Chancellour [were used, by HorU (Beorge 3|effrtpgf* 325 his Creatures, that were allowed by him so to do ; other Appli- cations commonly met with Disappointments, which caused an Emulation among the great Men ; one supposing to have deserved the King's Ear as well as the other, which caused other Measures to be taken, tho' some were weedled out of their Money. At last came out a General Pardon, with Ex- ceptions, very few if any of those that were sollicited for, not being excepted, were of Course pardoned ; but however, divers Sums of Money having been paid, no Restitution to be had, for from Hellis no Rede7nption. A Western Gentleman's Pur- chase came to fifteen or sixteen hundred Guineas, which my Lord Chancellor had. Amongst the Exceptions, were a .Parcel of Taunton Girls, some of which were Children of eight or ten Years old ; however something was to be made of them, if these Ladies were judged guilty of Treason, for presenting the Duke of Monmouth with Colours, &C. and for to preserve these from Trial, they were given to Maids of Honour to make up their Christmas- Box j so that an Agent of theirs was sent down into the Country to compound with their Parents, to preserve them from what might after follow, if taken ; so that some, according to Ability, gave ioo/. others 50/. all which however did not answer the Ladies first Expectations ; yet it did satisfie, and they were accordingly pardoned. Thus we have given you an Account of what hath happened on this Occasion, being in every Point Truth : We might have farther enlarged, but that would have spoiled the Design, and swoln our Pocket- Com- panion to a volume too big. We shall therefore next proceed to give you a true and exact List of all them that were condemned, and suffered in the West, in the Year 1685, under the Sentence of my Lord Chief Justice Jeffreys, with the Names of the Towns where every Man was executed. Lyme 12. Bath 6. John Caswell Col. Holmes Walter Baker Thomas Hayward Mr. Batiscomb Henry Body John Hellier Mr. William Hewling Gerrard Bryant Edward Beere Mr. Sampson Lark Thomas Clotworthy Henry Portridge Dr. Temple Thomas Collins George Pether Capt. Madders John Carter Thomas Peirce Capt. Matthews Philipsnorton 12. John Richards Mr. Joseph Tyler Robert Cook John Staple Mr. William Cox, & ^.Edward Creaves John Smith. 326 c. But passing this over, we now find this Person arrive'd at the Pinnacle of Honour ; the Purse and Mace were reserved for him, vacant by the Death of the Lord Keeper North, and: he advanced to the Lord Chancellourship of England; rais'd by this . Means, as one might think, above the Envy of the Crowd ; and it might be wished, in so dangerous a Heighth he had looked better to his Footsteps ; for now being created Baron of Went, we find him in a High Commission, or Ecclesiastical Court, Suspending the Honourable Lord Bishop of London from performing the Episcopal Office and Function of that See, and for no other Default, than not readily complying with the King's Letter in Suspending Dr. Sharp, Dean of Norwich, for Preach- ing a Sermon in the Parish Church of St. Giles in the Fields, at the Request of the Parishioners, showing the Errors and Fallacies of the Romish Religion; the better to confirm them in the Faith and Doctrine of the Church of England. Nor was it this good Bishop alone that was aimed at ; for Magdalen Colledge at Oxford was next attempted, and in that very Mother of Learning, and Chief Seminary of our Church, such Alter- ations were made as startled the Kingdom ; by whose Counsel I undertake not to determine ; but in the midst of Liberty of Conscience, as twice declared. The Church of England had a Test put upon her Sons, which seem'd such a Paradox that has been rarely heard of, viz. To Read the King's Declaration for Liberty of Conscience in the Churches, during the Time of Divine Service, and a Mark, and Penalties threatned to the Refusers ; which was evidently demonstrated by the Imprison- ment of those Pious Patriots of their Country, and Pillars of the Church, His Grace the Lord Archbishop of Canterbury, the Lord Bishops of Bath and Wells, Ely, Peterborough, Chi- chester, St. Asaph, and Bristol; who for shewing their Reasons, why they could not comply with this Command, by way of humble Petition, were sent to the Tower, and afterwards tried upon Information of High Misdemeanour, at the Court of Kings-Bench; where their Innocency appearing in a large manner, they were acquitted, to the Scandal of their Accusers : Yet Orders were sent into all Parts of England, to return an Account to the Lord Chancellor, of those that refused to Read the Declaration, that they might be proceeded against, for a Contempt of what their Consciences would not permit them to do ; and for a Time they were extremely hot upon it. Much about this Time there was a considerable Suit depending before him in Chancery, between a great Heiress and others, which BLorti (Btovst 3|effrepgf. 329 was sufficiently talkt of in the World, not without loud and deep Reflection on his Honesty and Honour ; for having given the Cause for the young Lady, he very speedily afterwards married her to his Son ; with this remarkable Circumstance, she being a Papist, to make sure Work, he married them both Ways, both by a Priest of the Church of Rome, and a Divine of the Church of England. And here, I think, we may place the Heighth and Acme of his Honour and Happiness, where he's not like to tarry long; for on the News of the great Prepar- ations in Holland, and that the Prince of Orajige were certainly design'd for England, the determined Councils cool'd, and then quite ceas'd, so that the Church of England Men, whose Cause the Prince had espoused, were restored again to the Com- missions and Trusts they had (by what Justice I know not) been lately deprived of; and amongst other Charters that were on this Occasion restored, was that of the City of London; and that which makes it more memorable, was, that it was brought to Guild-Hall by this Person, tho' he was not attended by the Shouts and Acclamations he expected, nor seemed so florid or frolicksome as heretofore, which some looked upon as a bad Omen ; and it's reported, soon after he being ask'd by a Courtier, What the Heads of the Prince's Declaration were f He should answer, He was sure his was one, whatever the rest were. When the late King James was secured at Feversham, he desired to see his Landlord, and demanded his Name, who proved a Person who had turned himself over to the Kings- Bench, for a Fine which fell upon him (and Captain Stanbrooke in Westminster) by the Lord Chancellour's Means at the Board, which King James, calling for a Pen and Ink, bid the Gentle- man write the Discharge as effectually as he would ; which he signed : Adding, That he was now sensible my Lord Chancellour hadbee7i a very ill Man, and done very ill Things. If he was thus censured by his Master for his former Services, and he had a bad Opinion of him ; without Prophecy any Man might pre- dict his Service and Interest was ceased ; and his Life would have been like the Scape-Goat, he must have born all their Crimes, and been beheaded for his own, for no less Indignation than Death was couched in the Words. Thus may be seen what would have been his End. The Court by this Time beginning to scatter, and the Prince of Orange approaching, the King thought fit to withdraw him- self ; upon Notice of which the Lord Chancellor betook himself to Wapping, disguised like a Sea-man, in Order to his Escape to Hamborough in a Collier ; but being * discovered, he was brought before Sir J. Chapman, Lord Mayor of the City of * And behold thou art taken in thy Mischief, because thou art a bloody Man. — 2 Sam. 16. v. 8. 330 %l)t liitt ana 2Deatj) of London, in a strange Disguise, very different from the Habit in which he formerly appeared : And by Reason of the Lord Mayor's Indisposition, he not being able to Commit him, he offered to go to the Tower, to be out of the Hands of the Rabble, who there in great Numbers with Clubs and Staves, threatned him with present Destruction; but having a Guard of the Train'd-Bands to conduct him, he got thither safe, and soon after was charged in Custody by a Warrant of Commitment from the ^ords at Whitehall, where he continued under much Affliction and Indisposition ; having since moved for his Habeas Corpus to be bailed, but was not able to attain it. He had not been in the Tower many Days, but as 'tis said (whether true or no, I cannot affim) he had a Barrel of Oysters sent him, upon sight of which he said to the Bearer, / see I have some Friends left still j but upon opening the Barrel, he found them to be only Friends that were impatient till they gave him a Prospect of his future Destiny, for verily the mighty Present was nothing but a good able Halter. Now, as I said before, whether this Passage be true or no, I cannot say, but this I am sure (if we consider his Lordship's Life and Cruelties), the Moral of it is very good. The Humble Petition of the Widows and Fatherless Children in the West of England. We, to the Number of a Thousand and more, Widows and Fatherless Children, of the Counties of Dorset, Somerset, and Devon, our dear Husbands and tender Fathers, having been so Tyrannously Butcher'd, and some Transported, our Estates Sold from us, and our Inheritance cut off by the Severe and Harsh Sentence of George Lord Jeffreys, now, we understand, in the Tower of London, a Prisoner, who has lately, we hear, endeavoured to excuse himself from those Tyrannical and Illegal Sentences, by laying it on Information by some Gentle- men, who are known to us to be good Christians, true Protes- tants and Englishmeii, We your Poor Petitioners, many Hundreds of us, on our Knees have begg'd Mercy for our Dear Husbands and Tender Parents, from his Cruel Hands, but his Thirst for Blood was so Great, and his Barbarism so Cruel, that instead of Granting Mercy to some, which were made appear to be Innocent, and Petitioned for by the Flower of the Gentry of the said Counties, he immediately caused them to be Executed ; and so Barbarously, that a very good Gentle- woman at Dorch, begging on her Knees the Life of a Worthy Gentleman, to Marry him, and make him her Husband ; this vile Wretch, having not Common Civility with him, and laying aside that Honour and Respect due to a Person of her Worth, told her, Come, I know your Meaning, some Part of your Petition I will grant, which shall be, that after he is Hangd 3CotU (Beorp 3|effrep0. 331 and Quartered, you shall have that Me7nber you best like when living, and soe I will give Orders to the Sheriff. These, with many Hundred more Tyrannical Acts, are ready to be made appear in the said Counties, by Honest and Credible Persons ; and therefore your Petitioners desire, that the said George Jeffreys, late Lord Chancellour, the Vilest of Men, may be brought down to the Counties aforesaid, where we, the good Women in the West, shall be glad to see him ; and give him another manner of Welcome than he had Three Years since. And your Petitioner shall ever Pray, &c! Thus he continued for some Months in the Tower, his Chronical Indispositions, the Stone, d^c. encreasing very fast upon him. The Ingenious Dr. Lower was his Physician : But Nature being now tired out by a tedious Combat with his Disease, and the Guilt of his former Bloody Life, we hope it touched his Conscience.. He having, besides by his Intemperate Life, notoriously known, contracted an 111 Habit of Body, he at last very happily for himself, if not his Relations too, dy'd in the Tower the Morning, about Nine of the Clock, An. Dom. 1689. — Thus, Reader, you have seen the Rise and Fall of this Unfortunate, Great 111 Man ; and so, at present, after we have endeavoured his Character, we take our Farewel. Jeffreys's Character. He was of Stature rather above a Middle Sort than below it ; his Complexion inclining to Fair ; his Face well enough, full of a certain Briskness, though mixt with an Air a little malicious and unpleasant. He was a Man of tolerable Sense, and had, as of Necessity he must, by so long Practice, and going through such Publick Places, got some Law, though, as little as 'twas, more than he had Occasion to make Use of ; since the Dis- pensing Power having as good as seared all Law in the King's Breast, he by that found out a more compendious Method of attaining it, than was formerly known. He had a pretty large Stock of 111 Nature and Witt, in which lay his greatest Excel- lency, though a veryunenvy'd one. But in fine, his Brow and his Tongue were the two best Accomplishments he was Master of. — By the Help of which, and that before mentioned, by his brisk, sudden, and sharp Interrogatories, he sometimes put Falshood, and perhaps oftner the Truth out of Countenance. But that ill-favour'd Wit which he had, lay all of the wrong Side ; much like that of those unlucky Animals, all whose Wit lyes in Tricks and Mischief. He spoke many pleasant Things, but very few handsom ones, disgracing all with intolerable Rail- ings, mean Passions, and perfect Billings-gate, and would commonly, even upon the Bench itself, fall into Heats both as to 332 W$t ILiiz antr 2Dtatf) of Words and Actions, not only unworthy of a Judge, but even of any prudent Man. He seem'd, without wronging him, to have a great deal of Baseness and Cruelty in his Nature, having a particular Delight and Relish in Cruelty and Blood, and such Things as give Horror and Aversion to all the rest of Mankin,d. He was in this Case even worse than Neroj for whereas that Monster had once so much good Nature, or at least pretended it, that when he was to sign a Warrant for the Execution of a Male- factor, he is said to have wish'd He had never learr? d to write : Jeffreys tfn the other side, then only seem'd in his Element when in the midst of Destruction and Murther. For his Religion — What a Sort of one 'twas, his Life past sufficiently tells us ; though he and his good Brother Commissioner, the Belswagger of Chester, maliciously persuade the World, that they were of the Church of England; that after they could do it no more Mischief with their Lives, they might disgrace it by their Death, pretending both to die in that Communion. — But 'tis mean to follow 'em any further, unless with a Wish, somewhat like that handsome one History leaves us, That all King William's and Queen Mary's Enemies were as ho7iourably buried, — Or, in the Inspired Words of a great Person, — So, O Lord, let all thine Ene?nies perish / A Letter to the Lord Chancellour, exposing to him the Sentiments of the People, with some pertinent Advice in the Conclusion. My Lord, I'd praise your Lordship, but you've had your Share Of that before, if not too much by far ; And now a nobler Field for Curses are : Yet I'll not curse, but leave you to the Croud, Who never baulk their Rage, but speak aloud : In all the Lab'rinths of your Crimes they'll track ye, Worse than ten thousand Furies they'll attack ye. We talk not here of Penal Laws or Test, Nor how you, King of Terrors, in the West, With more than humane Cruelty, opprest Those whose Shades now stab through your anxious Breast. To these I leave you, each with brandish'd Dart Throughly revenge his Quarrel at your Heart. For me, I'll only let your Lordship see How they resent your chang'd Felicity. Now may you hear the People as they scoure Along, not fear to damn the Chancellour : The Women too, and all the tender Crew, That us'd to pity all, now laugh at you. %nvH (Became ^effcepis* 333 The very Boys, how do they grin and prate, And giggle at the Bills upon your Gate ! Nay, rather than be frustrate of their Hope, The Women will contribute for a Rope : And those fine Locks that no bless'd Spark might touch, On this Account Ketch may, they love my Lord so much. Oh for Dispensing now! Ah ! Now's the Time ! Your Eloquence will hardly blanch the Crime ; And all the Turnings of Your Proteus-Wit, With all your little Tricks, won't help a bit : Ev'n that fine Tongue, in which your Lordship's Trust is, Now won't, although sometimes it baffled Justice : No Ignoramus Juries shall perplex ye, But with their Billa Verdt now they'll vex ye. From their dire Claws, no Hiding-hole you'll find ; They speak their own now, not a Party's Mind : Not now, as heretofore, when on the Bench Flattery and Daubing had such Influence, And Jeffreys for a Gift would with the Laws dispence. But granting all our Laws be out of Joint, Why yet they do not fear to gain the Point : A High Commission may the Cause decide, Your Lordship by a Butcher may be try'd, When by Commission he is dignify'd. His Power you must not doubt, if he be satisfy'd. This 'tis they mean, 'tis this they would have done ; But I wou'd chouse 'em ev'ry Mother's Son ; Troth I'd 'en hang my self, and soon have done. If you've no Halter, never make a Pother ; Take but a Greater, one's as good as t'other : For, Lord ! Should such a Man as you submit To be the publick Laughter of each grinning Cit ! Else, my Lord, take a Razor, never fear, And cut your Lordship's Throat from Ear to Ear : 'Tis feasible enough ; you know who did it ; Cut both the Jug'lar Veins thro' if you can, Else you'll say Essex was the stouter Man. I am your Lordship's, in any Thing of This Nature. From the little House over-against Tyburn, where the People are almost dead with Expectation of you. Jeffrey's ELEGY. I very well remember on a Night, Or rather in tYizfieeft of Morning- Light, When sweet Aurora with a smiling Eye Call'd up the Birds to wonted Melody. 334 %& %\U and 2Deatf) of Dull Morpheus with his Weight upon me leant, Half waking, and yet sleeping thus I Dream? d. Methoughts I saw a Lawyer at his Book Studying Pecunia, but never Cooke ; He scorned Littleton and Plowden too, With mouldy Authors he'd have nought to do. Next Stage I saw him on was Hicks's-Hall, And heard him mightily to roar and bawl, Never did City- Cry er louder yatd. The People star'd at such a Noise uncouth, Who is't, cries one ? Why 'tis the City's Mouth. Then straight I saw him plac'd, the more's the Pity, To be the Speaking Trumpet of the City ; Knight and Recorder he was made together, This Man, thought I, will live in any Weather : Money came in, he then grew mighty rich, And to climb higher had a deadly Itch. Then presently a Popish Priest came to him, That Square Cap Curr, thought I, will sure undo him. Wilt thou now be preferred, come hither, come. And be but reconciled unto Rome, And for Advancement thou may'st rest upon her, None of her Sons e'er wanted Wealth or Honour. Do but declare against the Whigs, and say, Thou hat'st the Ill-contriv'd Fanatick Way. With that, me thoughts I saw him tack about, And straight he courted that curs'd Romish Rout ; Esteemed it Happiness enough to go, And kiss his HoJiness's stinking Toe. Next Place I saw him in was Justice Chair, Who fled away, because she saw hi?n there. He with Commission rid the Land about, But still he aim'd to keep fair Justice out ; With angry Look he brow-beat Rightful Cause, And his bold Hand did sacrifice the Laws, Tore 'em, or trampled on 'em with his Paws. Poor Justice, being frighted, fled from Earth To Heaven, whence she did derive her Birth ; To the Eternal Justice she did go. And made Report what Monsters sate below. Inquisitors, like Spain, in England sate, And at their Pleasure steer'd the Helm of State. He rid the Western Circuit all around ; But where he came, no Justice cou'd be found : He improv'd his Talents Martrys to condemn, Hang, Draw and Quarter was his daily Theam. He bid 'em to confess, if e'er they hope 3Cor& (Btorge 3jtffrep& 335 To be reprieved from the fatal Rope. This seem'd a Favour, but he'd none forgive, The Favour was, a Day or two to live ; Which those had not that troubled him with Trial, Blood was his Business, and he'd have no Denial ; His Entrails Brass, his very Heart was Steel, Poor Souls he made his Judge's Courage feel. How valiant to condemn, when in his Power, Two Hundred he could sentence in an Hour. Guilty, or not, to him was all a Case, On Martyrs Bodies he did Honour raise, And to destroy by Retail thought it base. The Blood of Protestants for Vengeance cry, And will, I fear, to all Eternity. Although kind Death had made him scape Man's Doom, And quietly hath hurl'd him in his Tomb. Then next methought I saw him placed higher, O wither will this Canibal aspire ? The Purse, the Mace, and all the Honour that Belongeth to Lord Chancellor of State ; Made fat with Treason, he did daily thrive, Till to his highest Pitch he did arrive. The Church of England saw a Traitor lurch, Who went about to undermine their Church ; Witness else Maudlin Colledge, and the rest, He was the stoutest Stickler for the Test, But could not help it 'cause he was so high ; He soar'd above the Sight of humble Eye, Abhorr'd Petitioners, as heretofore, Such Varlets still was banisht from his Door : Now being on the Top of Fortune's Wheel, The giddy Goddess did begin to reel- A Warning 'tis to all depending on her, Of Ice is made the Pinacle of Honour, Or Glassy Substance, brittle shinning Hew, That afar off doth make a Golden Shew. Those that are low admire it, and would climb, Although they break their Necks the very Time. And now methoughts he hearing Preparations, That were a forming in the Neighbotir Nations, Prepares for his own Safety now in Time. Thinking the Thunder would on him incline ; Therefore being ask'd what were the Prince's Heads Of s Declaration, feelingly he said, His Head was one, aim'd at 'mongst many others, Knowing in Villany he'd many Brothers. With that betook him to his Heels, and run, 336 %l)t 1L\U ana 2Deatf), $c* Thinking by Bribes he could not Ruin shun : He took a Colliers Coat to Sea to go ; Was ever Chancellour arrayed so ! But like to like, he'd needs anticipate, Devil Incarnate, Collier of State. He dealt in Deeds of Darkness, black as Night. Such a Black Habit needs must fit him right. Brave Sight to see him in a Collier's Skin ; Come, Pence a Piece, my Masters enter in. My Lord Mayor swooned, and was stricken dumb, To see his metamorphos'd Lordship come. A Countryman he flouted once, I hear, Ask'd what he had for swearing, 'Twas too dear, You Bumpkin in the Leather Jacket there ; To whom the Hobnail quickly did reply, Had'st thou no more for lying, than poor I Have here for swearing, thou might'st quickly wear A Leather one, instead of Plush Thread-bare. Now had he seen my Lord in Colliers Buff, Bumpkin had past for Prophet sure enough. The Mobile and Rout with Clubs and Staves, Swore that his Carcass ne'er should lye in Graves. The'y eat him up alive within an Hour, Their Teeth should tear his Flesh, and him devour ; Limb him they would, as Boys on Shrovetide do, Some cryed, / am for a Wing and Arm ; for what are you ? I am for his Head, says one ; for his Brains, says t'other, And I am for his Sowse ; his Ears, another ; Oh, cries a third, I am for his Buttocks brave, Nine Pound of Stakes from them I mean to have ; I know the Rogue is fleshy, says a fourth ; For Sweet-breads, Lungs, and Heart they're nothing worth ; Yes, quoth another, but not good to eat, A Heart of Steel will ne'er prove tender Meat, But we must them dispose another Way, A good Rich Lawyer will a round Sum pay, For such a Set of loud and bellowing Lungs, Enough to serve a Hundred S ten tors Tongues. We'll sell his Heart to th' Pope to make a Show, A Relique on't, and he'll get Money too. But whilst they were dividing them in Thought, The Lord Mayor order'd Soldiers to be brought, Who rescued him from out the Rabbles Power. And straight away they took him to the Tower, With much ado he there was brought at last, To think on all his wicked Actions past. AN ALPHABETICAL TABLE OF THE CHIEF MATTERS CONTAINED IN THIS BOOK, Ansley'siAbraham^astSpeech 247 — His last Letter 248 Argyle (Earl), his Sufferings. . . I j I — His last Speech 172 Armstrong, his Sufferings and Dying Words 86 — His Elegy 90 Arnold, a brief Account of his Sufferings 17 Askew' s Letter to his Father.. 248 — Another Letter to his Friend 249 — The Account his Friend gives of him 249 Author's Sentiments concern- ing the Western Sufferers ... 279 A xminster and Honiton, an Ac- count of those executed there 218 Bateman's Sufferings Battiscomb, his Life and Suf- ferings — The Account given of him by his Relations — His last Words — A further Account of his Behaviour — A Poem on a Lady that came to Jeffreys to beg Mr. Battiscomb 's Life — His Character Blanchard, a cruel Parson, reviles a Goaler for not whip- ping a Boy half enough, with the Goaler's Answer... Boddy's last Speech Bragg V Dying Speech and Behaviour Bridport and Lyme, an Account of those that suffered there Burd, General Relations writ- ten by him and other West- Country Gentlemen — His Letters from Beckington with a remarkable Account of William Hussey and Tho. Paul, who suffer' d in the West — His Postscript to his Letter, giving an Account of his own Sufferings and Deliverance 96 144 H5 146 H7 147 148 276 229 200 205 263 265 268 Civilities of theCitizens oiExon to the Western Sufferers ... 279 Colledge, his Life, Trial, and last Words 19 — The Verses upon his Picture 27 — Poem written by himself .. . 27 Cornish's Sufferings 91 — A hint at the Occasion of his Martyrdom 92 — Passages before his Death. . . 93 — An Account of a Poem made in his Time 95 — His Character 96 Cox's Sufferings and Tri- umphant Death 211 Clerk of the Arraigns, his Speech to Jeffreys at Mr. Tutchin's Sentence 272 Dangerfield, his Life and Suf- ferings 105 — His Character 107 — His Elegy 107 — His Ghost to Jeffreys 115 Essex (Earl) his Life and Martyrdom 28 — His Character 41 — His Elegy 42 Evans (Minister) his Behaviour and Sufferings 219 Gaunfs Sufferings 166 — Her Dying Speech 167 — Her P.S. to the said Speech 170 Gatchet's Sufferings 182 GatchiVs Behaviour and Dying- words 258 Glisson of Yeovil, his Suffer- ings 216 Godfrey (Sir Edmond-bury), his Life and Martyrdom ... 1 — Anagram upon his Name... 16 — Poem on his Death 17 Hall (Richard) of Culliton, his Sufferings 216 Handing's Case 220 Hew lings (both Benjamin and William), an Account of their Behaviour both before 338 #n &lp|jabrttcal Rafale of tlje and at their execution, with several letters to divers of their Relations 128 — Further Account of Mr. W. Heivling 129 — A short Letter written just as he was going to Execution. . 134 — He is executed with Dr. Temple^ Mr. Madders, and others 140 — A Letter of his Sister to her Mother 136 — Further Account of Mr. B. Hewling 136 —His last letter before his Execution 142 — Their Characters 143 Hicks {John) last Speech 231 — His Letter to his Nephew the Day before his Death . . . 242 — His Letter to his Wife 243 — Another Letter to his Wife 244 Hymns made by several Suf- ferers Ill Holloway, his Life, Sufferings, and Dying- words 82 Holway of Lyme, his Be- haviour before and at the Place of Execution 250 — His last Words 251 Holmes (Col.) his Sufferings .. 207 — His Dying- words 207 — His last Prayer 208 — A further Account of his Behaviour 209 Honis Accusation 70 — His Dying- words 70 Hucker's Letter to the Book- seller concerning his Father 259 — His Letter to his Friend . . . 260 Jeffreys {George, late Lord Chancellour), his Life and Death 291 — His Speech to the Jury at the Trial of a Parson in the West 264 — Dedication to G. L. Jeffreys 285 — Poem to the Memory of the Lord Jeffreys 287 — His Birth and Parentage ... 292 — His Behaviour at School . . . 292 — His Father Prophecies that he ? il die with his Shoes and Stockings on 293 — His Dream -293 — His entring himself in the Inner Temple 293 — His Marriage and Early Son 294 — Is made Recorder of London 294 — His Speech about the King's Psalter 295 — He is turned out of his Re- cordership 296 — His Abhorrence of Peti- tioning 297 — His being on his Knees be- fore the House of Commons 297 — His ill Practices whilst Re- corder ....". 299 — Being curb'd by Baron Weston, he weeps for Anger 300 — The Answer of one in a Leather Doublet 300 — His Question to a Musician, with his Repartee 300 — How he got a Gentleman his Wife's Fortune out of Guild- Hall 301 — His Speech to one with a great Beard, and his Repartee 301 — His barbarous dealing with Mr. Moses Pitt 301 — His Speech to the Ladies upon Mr. Tutchirfs Sentence 272 — His vehement Discourse to the Jury against the Lord Russel 304 — His sordid treatment of Mr. Baxter 304 — A Narrative of Monmouth? s whole Expedition while in the West, which was the Prelogue to Jeffreys' s Cruel- ties there 305 — His secret Villanies .. 314 — His Bloody Practices in the West 314 — The Charge given by the Lord Jeffreys at Bristol, in his Return from his Western Campaign 319 C&fef St£atttr0 contained in tfjfg IS00L 339 — He calls the Mayor of Bristol Kidnapping Rogue 324 — He is made Lord Chancel- lour for his Cruelties in the West 324 — How he raised Money by procuring Pardons 324 — He is made Baron of Wem 328 — What followed thereupon... 328 — The Pr. of Orange approach- ing, he flies to Wapping in a Disguise 329 — He is taken and brought be- fore the Lord Mayor 329 — Is committed to the Tower 330 — The Western Widows' Peti- tion against him while in the Tower 330 — He dies in the Tower 331 — His Character 331 — A Letter sent to him there 332 —His Elegy ... 333 yenkyn {William) his Be- haviour both before and after his Execution, with several Letters to divers of his Re- lations 149 — His Letter to his Sister Scott 152 — His Letter to his Mother ... 153 — His Letter to his Sister Gourden 154 — His Character 155 yervaise, a Hatter, cruelly whipt, and why 276 Introduction to this Western Martyrology, shewing the Reasons why this Work is undertaken yohnson, Accusation against him E03 — His Address to all English Protestants in the Army ... 103 — His Character 104 Kirk's Cruelties related by an Eye and Ear-witness, who also gives an Account of other Western Barbarities... 261 King(John), an Account of his last Speech at the Place of Execution at Edinburgh ... 178 Kidd (y €£Sd c t ■< C :*m-:<- c mc # 1 WESTBRK1 ImartSog" S^HlW&u^ Ccc«t CT«r Cc C CC c CCCC